Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n according_a bishop_n rome_n 3,853 5 6.3333 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A62991 Historical collections, out of several grave Protestant historians concerning the changes of religion, and the strange confusions following in the reigns of King Henry the Eighth, Edward the Sixth, Queen Mary and Elizabeth : with an addition of several remarkable passages taken out of Sir Will. Dugdale's Antiquities of Warwickshire, relating to the abbies and their institution. Touchet, Anselm, d. 1689?; Hickes, George, 1642-1715.; Dugdale, William, Sir, 1605-1686. 1686 (1686) Wing T1955; ESTC R4226 184,408 440

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

notorious_a fornicator_n that_o be_v among_o the_o corinthian_n and_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o apostleship_n unto_o which_o apostle_n christ_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n do_v leave_v the_o whole_a spiritual_a government_n of_o his_o church_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o those_o plain_a word_n of_o st._n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n chap._n four_o say_n ipse_fw-la dedit_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la suae_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o have_v give_v to_o his_o church_n some_o to_o be_v apostle_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n for_o consummation_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o edify_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n but_o a_o woman_n in_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o call_v to_o be_v a_o apostle_n nor_o evangelist_n nor_o to_o be_v a_o pastor_n as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v a_o shepherd_n nor_o a_o doctor_n or_o a_o preacher_n therefore_o she_o can_v be_v supreme_a head_n of_o christ_n militant_a church_n nor_o yet_o of_o any_o part_n thereof_o for_o this_o high_a government_n god_n have_v appoint_v only_o to_o the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o his_o people_n as_o st._n paul_n plain_o witness_v in_o these_o word_n in_o the_o 20_o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n say_v attendite_fw-la vobis_fw-la &_o universo_fw-it gregi_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o thus_o much_o i_o have_v here_o say_v right_a honourable_a and_o my_o very_a good_a lord_n against_o this_o act_n of_o supremacy_n for_o the_o discharge_n of_o my_o poor_a conscience_n and_o for_o the_o love_n and_o fear_v and_o dread_a that_o i_o chief_o owe_v unto_o god_n to_o my_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o lady_n the_o queen_n majesty_n highness_n and_o to_o your_o honour_n all._n where_o otherwise_o without_o mature_a consideration_n of_o all_o these_o premise_n your_o honour_n shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o show_v your_o face_n before_o your_o enemy_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v so_o strange_a a_o spectacle_n and_o example_n in_o christ_n church_n as_o in_o this_o realm_n be_v only_o to_o be_v find_v and_o in_o no_o other_o christian_a realm_n thus_o humble_o beseech_v your_o honour_n to_o take_v in_o good_a part_n this_o my_o rude_a and_o plain_a speech_n which_o here_o i_o have_v use_v of_o much_o zeal_n and_o fervent_a good_a will_n and_o now_o i_o shall_v not_o trouble_v your_o honour_n any_o long_o thus_o as_o to_o this_o speech_n but_o notwithstanding_o this_o speech_n or_o whatsoever_o else_o can_v be_v say_v against_o it_o the_o act_n pass_v and_o this_o supremacy_n be_v grant_v to_o the_o queen_n chap._n iu._n a_o further_a prosecution_n of_o the_o settlement_n of_o this_o change_n of_o religion_n establish_v by_o parliament_n and_o of_o the_o opposition_n of_o the_o catholic_n clergy_n against_o this_o strange_a innovation_n dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 108._o now_o for_o the_o better_a exercise_v and_o enjoy_v the_o jurisdiction_n thus_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o crown_n there_o be_v this_o clause_n put_v into_o the_o act_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o the_o queen_n to_o give_v power_n to_o such_o as_o she_o think_v fit_a to_o exercise_v all_o manner_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n and_o to_o visit_v reform_v redress_n order_n correct_v and_o amend_v all_o kind_n of_o error_n heresy_n schism_n etc._n etc._n with_o this_o proviso_n notwithstanding_o that_o nothing_o shall_v from_o thenceforth_o be_v account_v heresy_n but_o what_o be_v so_o adjudge_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o in_o one_o of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n or_o in_o any_o other_o national_a or_o provincial_a council_n determine_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o final_o which_o shall_v be_v so_o adjudge_v in_o the_o time_n to_o come_v by_o the_o court_n of_o parliament_n this_o be_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o the_o high_a commission_n court_n and_o from_o hence_o issue_v that_o commission_n by_o which_o the_o queen_n minister_n proceed_v in_o that_o visitation_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o her_o reign_n for_o rectify_v all_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o find_v amiss_o there_o also_o pass_v another_o act_n for_o recommend_v and_o impose_v the_o book_n of_o common-prayer_n and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n according_a to_o such_o alteration_n and_o correction_n as_o be_v make_v therein_o by_o those_o that_o be_v appoint_v to_o review_v it_o in_o performance_n of_o which_o service_n there_o be_v great_a care_n take_v to_o expunge_v out_o all_o such_o passage_n in_o it_o as_o may_v give_v any_o scandal_n or_o offence_n to_o the_o papist_n or_o be_v urge_v by_o they_o in_o excuse_n for_o their_o not_o come_v to_o church_n in_o the_o litany_n fi●…st_v make_v and_o publish_v by_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o and_o afterward_o continue_v in_o the_o two_o liturgy_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o there_o be_v a_o prayer_n to_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o tyranny_n and_o all_o the_o detestable_a enormity_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v think_v fit_a to_o be_v leave_v out_o as_o giving_z matter_n of_o scandal_n and_o dissatisfaction_n to_o all_o that_o party_n in_o the_o first_o liturgy_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n be_v deliver_v with_o this_o benediction_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v give_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o thy_o body_n and_o soul_n to_o life_n everlasting_a the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v think_v by_o calvin_n and_o his_o disciple_n to_o give_v some_o countenance_n to_o the_o carnal_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o pass_v by_o the_o name_n of_o transubstantiation_n in_o the_o school_n of_o rome_n be_v alter_v in_o this_o form_n into_o the_o second_o liturgy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v take_v and_o eat_v this_o in_o remembrance_n that_o christ_n die_v for_o thou_o and_o feed_v on_o he_o in_o thy_o heart_n by_o faith_n with_o thanksgiving_n take_v and_o drink_v this_o etc._n etc._n but_o the_o revisor_n of_o the_o book_n join_v both_o form_n together_o lest_o under_o colour_n of_o reject_v a_o carnal_a they_o may_v be_v think_v also_o to_o ceny_n a_o real_a presence_n as_o be_v de●…ended_v in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n upon_o which_o ground_n they_o expunge_v also_o a_o whole_a rubric_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o communion_n service_n by_o which_o it_o be_v declare_v that_o kneel_v at_o the_o communion_n be_v require_v for_o no_o other_o reason_n than_o for_o a_o signification_n of_o the_o humble_a and_o grateful_a acknowledg●…ent_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n give_v therein_o unto_o the_o worthy_a r●…ceiver_n and_o to_o avoid_v that_o profanation_n and_o disorder_n which_o otherwise_o may_v have_v ensue_v and_o not_o for_o give_v any_o adoration_n to_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n and_o wine_n there_o bodily_a receive_v or_o in_o regard_n of_o any_o real_a or_o essential_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n this_o rubric_n be_v again_o late_o insert_v and_o to_o come_v up_o close_o to_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v order_v by_o the_o queen_n injunction_n that_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n which_o the_o book_n require_v only_o to_o be_v make_v of_o the_o fine_a flower_n shall_v be_v make_v round_o in_o the_o fashion_n of_o the_o wafer_n use_v in_o the_o time_n of_o queen_n mary_n she_o also_o order_v that_o the_o lord_n table_n shall_v be_v place_v where_o the_o altar_n stand_v and_o that_o the_o accustom_a reverence_n shall_v be_v make_v at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n music_n retain_v in_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o other_o festival_n observe_v with_o their_o several_a eve_n by_o which_o compliance_n and_o the_o expung_a of_o the_o passage_n before_o mention_v the_o book_n be_v make_v more_o plausible_a and_o that_o it_o may_v pass_v the_o better_a in_o both_o house_n when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o vote_n it_o be_v think_v requisite_a that_o a_o disputation_n shall_v be_v hold_v about_o some_o point_n which_o be_v most_o likely_a to_o be_v keke_v at_o two_o speech_n be_v make_v against_o this_o book_n in_o the_o house_n of_o peer_n by_o scot_n and_o feckenham_n and_o one_o against_o the_o queen_n supremacy_n by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o large_a york_n but_o they_o prevail_v little_a in_o both_o point_n by_o the_o power_n of_o their_o eloquence_n in_o the_o convocation_n which_o accompany_v this_o present_a parliament_n there_o be_v little_o do_v because_o they_o despared_a of_o do_v any_o good_a to_o themselves_o or_o their_o cause_n the_o chief_a thing_n they_o do_v be_v a_o declaration_n of_o their_o judgement_n in_o some_o certain_a point_n which_o at_o that_o time_n be_v conceive_v fit_a to_o be_v commend_v to_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o parliament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v first_o that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n by_o
for_o so_o many_o age_n forsake_v his_o church_n and_o leave_v she_o in_o a_o error_n again_o the_o beauty_n and_o splendour_n of_o that_o church_n their_o solemn_a service_n the_o stateliness_n and_o magnificence_n of_o their_o hierarchy_n their_o name_n of_o catholic_n which_o they_o claim_v as_o their_o own_o due_a and_o to_o concern_v no_o other_o sect_n of_o christianity_n the_o antiquity_n of_o their_o doctrine_n the_o continual_a succession_n of_o their_o bishop_n their_o immediate_a derivation_n from_o the_o apostle_n their_o title_n to_o succeed_v st._n peter_n who_o personal_a prerogative_n be_v so_o great_a the_o honourable_a expression_n concern_v this_o church_n from_o many_o eminent_a bishop_n of_o other_o inferior_a see_v which_o be_v old_a record_n have_v obtain_v a_o credibility_n the_o multitude_n and_o variety_n of_o people_n which_o be_v of_o their_o persuasion_n apparent_a consent_n with_o elder_a age_n in_o matter_n doctrinal_a the_o advantage_n which_o be_v derive_v to_o they_o by_o retain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ancient_a time_n the_o great_a consent_n one_o part_n with_o another_o in_o that_o which_o they_o affirm_v to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la the_o great_a difference_n which_o be_v commence_v among_o their_o adversary_n abuse_v the_o liberty_n of_o prophesy_v unto_o a_o very_a great_a licentiousness_n their_o happiness_n in_o be_v instrumental_a in_o convert_v divers_a nation_n the_o advantage_n of_o monarchical_a government_n and_o the_o benefit_n which_o they_o daily_o enjoy_v by_o it_o the_o piety_n and_o the_o austerity_n of_o their_o religious_a order_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n the_o single_a life_n of_o their_o priest_n and_o bishop_n the_o riches_n of_o their_o church_n the_o severity_n of_o their_o fast_n and_o other_o their_o exterior_a observance_n the_o great_a reputation_n of_o their_o bishop_n for_o faith_n and_o sanctity_n the_o know_a holiness_n of_o some_o of_o those_o person_n who_o institutes_n the_o religious_a person_n do_v now_o imitate_v and_o follow_v their_o miracle_n the_o casualty_n and_o accident_n that_o have_v happen_v to_o many_o of_o their_o adversary_n the_o oblique_a act_n and_o indirect_a proceed_n of_o some_o of_o those_o who_o have_v depart_v from_o they_o and_o among_o many_o other_o thing_n the_o name_n of_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_a which_o they_o fasten_v upon_o all_o that_o disagree_v from_o they_o etc._n etc._n thus_o dr._n taylor_n see_v the_o learned_a grotius_n declare_v the_o impossibility_n of_o unite_n christian_n into_o one_o body_n but_o by_o their_o adhere_n to_o the_o roman_a see_n what_o be_v the_o reason_n say_v grotius_n in_o his_o first_o reply_n to_o rivet_n ad_fw-la artic._n 7._o that_o such_o as_o differ_v in_o opinion_n among_o catholic_n remain_v in_o the_o same_o body_n not_o break_v communion_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a when_o dissension_n happen_v among_o protestant_n they_o can_v thus_o compose_v dispute_n and_o opposition_n although_o they_o speak_v much_o of_o fraternal_a love_n now_o he_o that_o shall_v examine_v this_o well_o will_v find_v how_o much_o force_n and_o power_n there_o be_v in_o the_o primacy_n thus_o he_o this_o bring_v to_o mind_v that_o say_n of_o st._n jerom_n concern_v st._n peter_n primacy_n wherefore_o among_o the_o twelve_o one_o be_v choose_v that_o a_o head_n be_v constitute_v and_o appoint_v all_o occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o hieronym_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 14._o advers._fw-la jovinian_a now_o again_o the_o same_o grotius_n in_o the_o close_a of_o his_o last_o reply_n to_o rivet_n write_v not_o long_o before_o his_o death_n write_v thus_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o grotius_n have_v always_o wish_v for_o a_o restitution_n and_o reunite_a of_o christian_n into_o one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n he_o be_v sometime_o of_o opinion_n that_o this_o may_v have_v be_v begin_v by_o a_o conjunction_n or_o union_n of_o protestant_n among_o themselves_o but_o he_o afterward_o discern_v that_o this_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v effect_v because_o beside_o that_o most_o of_o all_o the_o calvinist_n be_v total_o averse_a from_o any_o such_o peace_n or_o union_n protestant_n be_v not_o associate_v or_o unite_v under_o any_o common_a ecclesiastical_a government_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o diverse_a part_n of_o they_o can_v be_v collect_v into_o one_o body_n and_o withal_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o they_o must_v necessary_o still_o divide_v into_o more_o new_a sect_n or_o part_n wherefore_o grotius_n now_o plain_o see_v and_o judge_n as_o likewise_o many_o other_o with_o he_o that_o protestant_n can_v never_o be_v unite_v among_o themselves_o unless_o they_o be_v join_v with_o those_o that_o adhere_v to_o the_o roman_a see_v without_o which_o no_o common_a government_n can_v be_v expect_v in_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o he_o wish_v that_o the_o division_n and_o separation_n which_o have_v be_v make_v and_o likewise_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o may_v be_v take_v away_o now_o among_o these_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n can_v be_v look_v upon_o as_o one_o cause_n even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o melancthon_n himself_o who_o think_v that_o premacy_n to_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o retain_v and_o preserve_v of_o unity_n thus_o grotius_n concering_n the_o unite_n all_o christians_n by_o their_o adhere_n to_o the_o roman_a see_n see_v doctor_n field_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o book_n of_o the_o church_n recommend_v the_o end_n all_o dispute_n in_o religion_n by_o a_o lawful_a church-authority_n see_v say_v he_o the_o controversy_n in_o religion_n in_o our_o time_n be_v grow_v in_o number_n so_o many_o and_o in_o matter_n so_o intricate_a that_o few_o have_v time_n and_o leisure_n few_o strength_n of_o understanding_n to_o examine_v they_o what_o remain_v for_o man_n desirous_a of_o satisfaction_n in_o thing_n of_o such_o consequence_n but_o diligent_o to_o search_v out_o which_o among_o all_o the_o society_n of_o the_o world_n be_v that_o bless_a company_n of_o holy_a one_o that_o household_n of_o faith_n that_o spouse_n of_o christ_n and_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n which_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n that_o so_o he_o may_v embrace_v her_o communion_n follow_v her_o direction_n and_o rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n thus_o dr._n field_n in_o like_a manner_n dr._n hammond_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o heresy_n sect._n 13._o num._n 2_o 3._o speak_v thus_o of_o the_o christian_n security_n from_o the_o divine_a providence_n in_o his_o adherance_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o church_n authority_n if_o we_o consider_v say_v he_o god_n great_a wise_a and_o constant_a providence_n and_o care_v over_o his_o church_n his_o desire_n that_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v and_o in_o order_n to_o that_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n his_o promise_n that_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v his_o faithful_a servant_n to_o be_v tempt_v above_o what_o they_o be_v able_a nor_o permit_v scandal_n and_o false_a teacher_n to_o prevail_v to_o the_o seduce_a of_o the_o very_a elect_n his_o most_o pious_a godly_a servant_n if_o i_o say_v we_o consider_v these_o and_o some_o other_o suchlike_a general_n promise_v of_o scripture_n wherein_o this_o question_n about_o the_o errability_n of_o council_n seem_v to_o be_v concern_v we_o shall_v have_v reason_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v never_o suffer_v all_o christian_n to_o fall_v into_o such_o a_o temptation_n as_o it_o must_v be_v in_o case_n the_o whole_a representative_a of_o the_o church_n shall_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o therein_o find_v approbation_n and_o reception_n among_o all_o those_o bishop_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n diffuse_v which_o be_v out_o of_o the_o council_n thus_o he_o see_v also_o his_o commentary_n on_o 1_o tim._n 3._o 15._o the_o church_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n according_a to_o this_o it_o be_v say_v he_o that_o christ_n be_v say_v ephes._n 4._o 12._o to_o have_v give_v not_o only_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n but_o also_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n that_o be_v bishop_n in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o compact_n the_o saint_n into_o a_o church_n for_o the_o build_n up_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n confirm_v and_o continue_v they_o in_o all_o truth_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o like_a child_n carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o dectrin_n and_o so_o again_o when_o heresy_n come_v into_o the_o church_n in_o the_o first_o age_n it_o be_v every_o where_o apparent_a by_o ignatius_n his_o epistle_n that_o the_o only_a way_n of_o avoid_v error_n and_o danger_n be_v to_o adhere_v to_o the_o bishop_n in_o communion_n and_o doctrine_n and_o whosoever_o depart_v from_o he_o and_o from_o that_o form_n of_o wholesome_a word_n keep_v by_o he_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v corrupt_v thus_o far_o dr._n hammond_n see_v doctor_n jackson_n on_o the_o
historical_a collection_n out_o of_o several_a grave_a protestant_a historian_n concern_v the_o change_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o strange_a confusion_n follow_v in_o the_o reign_v of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o edward_z the_o six_z queen_n mary_n and_o elizabeth_n with_o a_o addition_n of_o several_a remarkable_a passage_n take_v out_o of_o sir_n will._n dugdale_n antiquity_n of_o warwickshire_n relate_v to_o the_o abbey_n and_o their_o institution_n publish_a with_o allowance_n london_n print_v by_o henry_n hill_n printer_n to_o the_o king_n most_o excellent_a majesty_n for_o his_o household_n and_o chapel_n and_o for_o he_o and_o mat●…_n tur●…er_n at_o the_o lamb_n in_o high_a holbourn_n 1686._o the_o preface_n have_v peruse_v several_a of_o our_o history_n of_o england_n and_o stand_v amaze_v to_o find_v in_o they_o that_o the_o alteration_n of_o religion_n here_o have_v be_v total_o carry_v on_o by_o worldly_a interest_n i_o think_v it_o will_v not_o be_v ungrateful_a to_o the_o reader_n to_o have_v those_o various_a passage_n concern_v the_o change_n of_o religion_n collect_v together_o out_o of_o those_o history_n for_o the_o inform_v he_o exact_o how_o those_o change_n have_v be_v make_v and_o withal_o of_o the_o beginning_n and_o progress_n of_o presbytery_n in_o this_o nation_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o multiply_v other_o sect_n which_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o our_o late_a confusion_n i_o have_v labour_v to_o connect_v these_o passage_n together_o in_o as_o good_a a_o order_n as_o i_o think_v can_v be_v expect_v in_o matter_n ●…ulled_v out_o of_o such_o large_a volume_n much_o more_o may_v have_v be_v collect_v concern_v these_o matter_n out_o of_o diverse_a other_o history_n but_o i_o think_v the_o chief_a matter_n be_v here_o sufficient_o handle_v which_o may_v satisfy_v the_o curiosity_n of_o any_o indifferent_a reader_n to_o add_v more_o authority_n to_o what_o shall_v be_v here_o take_v out_o of_o dr._n heylyn_n history_n of_o reformation_n from_o whence_o the_o chief_a matter_n of_o these_o collection_n be_v gather_v i_o will_v here_o insert_v a_o passage_n out_o of_o the_o preface_n of_o it_o by_o which_o it_o will_v appear_v what_o diligence_n he_o have_v use_v in_o compose_v this_o history_n the_o word_n of_o the_o preface_n be_v these_o in_o this_o follow_a history_n you_o will_v find_v more_o to_o satisfy_v your_o curiosity_n and_o inform_v your_o judgement_n then_o can_v be_v possible_o draw_v up_o in_o this_o general_a view_n as_o for_o my_o performance_n in_o this_o work_n in_o the_o first_o place_n i_o be_o to_o tell_v you_o that_o towards_o the_o raise_n of_o this_o fabric_n i_o have_v not_o borrow_v my_o material_n only_o out_o of_o vulgar_a author_n but_o search_v into_o the_o record_n of_o the_o convocation_n consult_v all_o such_o act_n of_o parliament_n as_o concern_v my_o purpose_n advise_v with_o many_o foreign_a writer_n of_o great_a name_n and_o credit_n exemplify_v some_o record_n and_o charter_n of_o no_o common_a quality_n many_o rare_a piece_n in_o the_o cottonian_a library_n and_o not_o a_o few_o debate_n and_o order_n of_o the_o council-table_n which_o i_o have_v lay_v together_o in_o as_o good_a a_o form_n and_o beautify_v it_o with_o a_o trim_n as_o agreeable_a as_o my_o hand_n can_v give_v it_o thus_o dr._n heylyn_n a_o preamble_n to_o the_o follow_a collection_n concern_v the_o great_a kindness_n and_o good_a correspondence_n between_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o and_o some_o pope_n first_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o for_o write_v a_o book_n against_o luther_n receive_v a_o bull_n from_o the_o pope_n whereby_o he_o have_v the_o title_n give_v he_o to_o be_v defender_n of_o the_o faith_n for_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n for_o ever_o the_o relation_n concern_v which_o book_n and_o the_o reception_n of_o it_o by_o the_o pope_n be_v thus_o set_v down_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o lord_n herbert_n of_o cherbury_n pag._n 104._o our_o king_n be_v at_o leisure_n now_o from_o war_n and_o delight_v much_o in_o learning_n think_v he_o can_v not_o give_v better_a proof_n either_o of_o his_o zeal_n or_o education_n then_o to_o write_v against_o luther_n to_o this_o also_o he_o be_v exasperate_v that_o luther_n have_v oftentimes_o speak_v contemptuous_o of_o the_o learned_a thomas_n of_o a●…uin_n who_o yet_o be_v in_o so_o much_o requst_n with_o the_o king_n that_o he_o be_v therefore_o call_v thomistious_a hereupon_o the_o king_n compile_v a_o book_n wherein_o he_o strenuous_o oppose_a luther_n in_o the_o point_n of_o indulgence_n number_n of_o sacrament_n the_o papal_a authority_n and_o other_o particular_n to_o be_v see_v in_o that_o his_o work_n entitle_v de_fw-la septem_fw-la sacramentis_fw-la etc._n etc._n a_o principal_a copy_n whereof_o rich_o bind_v be_v send_v to_o leo_n i_o remember_v myself_o to_o have_v see_v in_o the_o vatican_n library_n the_o manner_n of_o the_o delivery_n whereof_o as_o i_o find_v it_o in_o our_o record_n be_v thus_o doctor_n john_n clark_n dean_n of_o windsor_n our_o king_n ambassador_n appear_v in_o full_a consistory_n the_o pope_n know_v the_o glorious_a present_n he_o bring_v first_o give_v he_o his_o cheek_n to_o kiss_v and_o then_o receive_v the_o book_n promise_v to_o do_v so_o much_o for_o the_o approbation_n thereof_o as_o ever_o be_v do_v for_o st._n augustine_n or_o st._n hierome_n work_n assure_v he_o withal_o that_o the_o next_o consistory_n he_o will_v bestow_v a_o public_a title_n on_o our_o king_n which_o have_v be_v heretofore_o private_o debate_v among_o the_o cardinal_n those_o of_o protector_n defensor_fw-la romanae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la or_o sedis_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la or_o rex_fw-la apostolicus_n or_o orthodoxus_n produce_v they_o at_o last_o agree_v on_o defensor_fw-la fidei_fw-la a_o transcript_n of_o which_o bull_n out_o of_o a_o original_a sub_fw-la plumbo_fw-la in_o our_o record_n i_o have_v here_o insert_v leo_n bishop_n servant_z of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n to_o his_o most_o dear_a son_n henry_n king_n of_o england_n defender_n of_o the_o faith_n all_o health_n and_o happiness_n god_n have_v call_v we_o although_o infinite_o unworthy_a of_o it_o to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n we_o bend_v all_o our_o thought_n to_o promote_v the_o catholic_n faith_n without_o which_o none_o can_v be_v save_v and_o labour_v by_o all_o mean_n as_o belong_v to_o our_o duty_n to_o make_v use_n of_o and_o promote_v all_o such_o help_n as_o have_v be_v wise_o ordain_v for_o the_o preserve_n the_o integrity_n of_o christian_a faith_n among_o all_o but_o most_o especial_o among_o prince_n and_o to_o suppress_v the_o endeavour_n of_o those_o who_o labour_n to_o corrupt_v it_o by_o lie_n and_o false_a doctrine_n and_o as_o other_o bishop_n of_o rome_n our_o predecessor_n have_v be_v accustom_v to_o confer_v special_a favour_n upon_o catholic_n prince_n according_a to_o the_o exigency_n of_o time_n and_o affair_n especial_o upon_o such_o as_o have_v not_o only_o remain_v unmovable_a in_o their_o obedience_n to_o the_o holy_a roman_a catholic_n church_n with_o a_o entire_a faith_n and_o servant_n devotion_n in_o the_o tempestuous_a time_n and_o rage_a perfidious_a fury_n of_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n but_o likewise_o as_o legitimate_a child_n and_o stout_a champion_n of_o the_o same_o church_n have_v oppose_v themselves_o both_o temporal_o and_o spiritual_o against_o the_o mad_a fury_n of_o such_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n as_o have_v oppose_v it_o so_o we_o also_o desire_v to_o extol_v your_o majesty_n with_o condign_a and_o immortal_a praise_n for_o your_o excellent_a and_o immortal_a work_n and_o action_n in_o favour_n of_o we_o and_o this_o holy_a see_v where_o by_o god_n permission_n we_o be_v establish_v and_o to_o grant_v you_o those_o thing_n which_o may_v enable_v and_o engage_v you_o to_o have_v a_o care_n to_o preserve_v our_o lord_n flock_v from_o wolf_n and_o to_o cut_v off_o with_o the_o material_a sword_n rot_a member_n that_o seek_v to_o infect_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n confirm_v in_o the_o solidity_n of_o faith_n the_o heart_n of_o such_o as_o waver_v or_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o fall_v when_o our_o belove_a son_n john_n clark_n your_o majesty_n orator_n or_o ambassador_n deliver_v unto_o we_o in_o our_o consistory_n before_o our_o venerable_a brethren_n cardinal_n of_o the_o holy_a roman_a church_n and_o many_o other_o prelate_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n a_o book_n which_o your_o majesty_n have_v compose_v out_o of_o your_o great_a charity_n and_o zeal_n of_o catholic_n faith_n inflame_v with_o a_o fervour_n of_o devotion_n towards_o we_o and_o this_o holy_a see_v as_o a_o noble_a and_o proper_a antidote_n against_o the_o error_n of_o divers_a heretic_n often_o condemn_v by_o this_o holy_a see_v and_o late_o raise_v up_o again_o by_o martin_n luther_n he_o then_o likewise_o further_o declare_v unto_o we_o your_o majesty_n desire_n that_o this_o
case_n that_o your_o subject_n shall_v either_o examine_v by_o what_o right_a ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v innovate_v or_o inquire_v how_o far_o they_o be_v bind_v thereby_o since_o beside_o that_o it_o may_v cause_v division_n and_o hazard_v the_o overthrow_n both_o of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o authority_n it_o will_v give_v that_o offence_n and_o scandal_n abroad_o that_o foreign_a prince_n will_v both_o reprove_v and_o disallow_v all_o our_o proceed_n in_o this_o kind_n and_o upon_o occasion_n be_v dispose_v easy_o to_o join_v against_o we_o thus_o my_o lord_n herbert_n relate_v this_o excellent_a speech_n but_o notwithstanding_o this_o speech_n or_o whatsoever_o can_v be_v say_v against_o it_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v exclude_v and_o the_o king_n marry_v anne_n boleign_v which_o be_v thus_o set_v down_o by_o stow_n continued_z by_z how_o be_v pag._n 554._o king_n henry_n upon_o occasion_n of_o these_o delay_n make_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o controversy_n of_o divorce_n and_o through_o displeasure_n of_o such_o report_n as_o he_o hear_v have_v be_v make_v of_o he_o to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o three_o move_v by_o some_o counsellor_n to_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o german_n cause_v a_o proclamation_n to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n forbid_v all_o his_o subject_n to_o purchase_v any_o manner_n of_o thing_n from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o obtain_v a_o divorce_n from_o queen_n catherine_n his_o wife_n by_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n he_o private_o marry_a anne_n boleign_v and_o upon_o that_o by_o another_o act_n of_o parliament_n the_o pope_n with_o all_o his_o authority_n be_v clean_o banish_v his_o realm_n and_o order_n take_v that_o he_o shall_v no_o more_o be_v call_v pope_n but_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o king_n to_o be_v take_v and_o repute_v as_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v full_a authority_n to_o reform_v all_o error_n heresy_n and_o abuse_n in_o the_o same_o it_o be_v further_o enact_v by_o another_o act_n of_o parliament_n that_o no_o person_n shall_v appeal_v for_o any_o cause_n out_o of_o this_o realm_n to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n but_o from_o the_o commissary_n to_o the_o bishop_n from_o the_o bishop_n to_o the_o archbishop_n from_o the_o archbishop_n to_o the_o king_n and_o all_o cause_n of_o the_o king_n to_o be_v try_v in_o the_o upper-house_n of_o parliament_n moreover_o the_o first-fruit_n and_o ten_o of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n and_o promotion_n be_v grant_v to_o the_o king_n thus_o far_o stow._n this_o desert_v of_o the_o pope_n be_v thus_o relate_v by_o dr._n heylyn_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o history_n of_o reformation_n king_n henry_n the_o eight_o be_v business_n violent_o hurry_v with_o the_o transport_v of_o some_o private_a affection_n and_o find_v that_o the_o pope_n appear_v the_o great_a obstacle_n to_o his_o desire_n he_o extinguish_v his_o authority_n in_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n this_o open_v the_o first_o way_n to_o the_o reformation_n and_o give_v encouragement_n to_o those_o who_o incline_v unto_o it_o to_o which_o the_o king_n afford_v no_o small_a countenance_n out_o of_o politic_a ends._n but_o for_o his_o own_o part_n he_o adhere_v to_o his_o old_a religion_n severe_o persecute_v those_o that_o dissent_v from_o it_o and_o die_v though_o excommunicate_v in_o that_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n which_o he_o have_v suck_v in_o as_o it_o be_v with_o his_o mother_n milk_n and_o of_o which_o he_o show_v himself_o so_o stout_a a_o champion_n against_o luther_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n concern_v the_o beginning_n of_o this_o prodigious_a change_n of_o religion_n the_o first_o opposition_n against_o this_o sudden_a change_n be_v a_o sermon_n of_o one_o friar_n peto_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o king_n be_v second_o marriage_n thus_o relate_v by_o howes_n upon_o stow_n pag._n 562._o the_o first_o that_o open_o resist_v or_o reprehend_v the_o king_n touch_v his_o marriage_n with_o anne_n boleign_v be_v one_o friar_n peto_n a_o simple_a man_n yet_o very_o devout_a of_o the_o ord●…_n of_o the_o observant_n this_o man_n preach_v at_o greenwich_n upon_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o chapter_n of_o the_o three_o book_n of_o the_o king_n to_o wit_n the_o last_o part_n of_o the_o story_n of_o achab_n say_v even_o where_o the_o dog_n lick_v the_o blood_n of_o nabaoth_n even_o there_o shall_v dog_n lick_v thy_o blood_n also_o o_o king_n and_o therewithal_o speak_v of_o the_o lie_a prophet_n which_o abuse_v the_o king_n etc._n etc._n i_o be_o say_v he_o that_o micheas_n who_o you_o will_v hate_v because_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o true_o that_o this_o marriage_n be_v unlawful_a and_o i_o know_v that_o i_o shall_v eat_v the_o bread_n of_o affliction_n and_o drink_v the_o water_n of_o sorrow_n yet_o because_o our_o lord_n have_v put_v it_o into_o my_o mouth_n i_o must_v speak_v it_o and_o when_o he_o have_v strong_o enveigh_v against_o the_o king_n second_o marriage_n to_o dissuade_v he_o from_o it_o he_o also_o say_v there_o be_v many_o other_o preacher_n yea_o too_o many_o which_o preach_v and_o persuade_v you_o otherwise_o feed_v your_o folly_n and_o frail_a affection_n upon_o hope_n of_o their_o own_o worldly_a promotion_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n betray_v your_o soul_n your_o honour_n and_o posterity_n to_o obtain_v fat_a benefice_n to_o become_v rich_a abbot_n and_o get_v episcopal_a jurisdiction_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n these_o i_o say_v be_v the_o four_o hundred_o prophet_n who_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o lie_v seek_v to_o deceive_v you_o but_o take_v good_a heed_n lest_o you_o be_v seduce_v find_v achab_n '_o s_o punishment_n which_o be_v to_o have_v his_o blood_n lick_v up_o by_o dog_n say_v that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a misery_n in_o prince_n to_o be_v daily_o abuse_v by_o flatterer_n the_o king_n be_v thus_o reprove_v endure_v it_o patient_o and_o do_v no_o violence_n to_o peto_n but_o the_o next_o sunday_n 562._o dr._n curwin_n preach_v in_o the_o same_o place_n who_o most_o sharp_o reprehend_v peto_n and_o his_o preach_v call_v he_o dog_n slanderer_n base_a beggarly_a friar_n rebel_n traitor_n say_v that_o no_o subject_n shall_v speak_v so_o audacious_o to_o prince_n and_o have_v speak_v much_o to_o that_o effect_n and_o in_o commendation_n of_o the_o king_n marriage_n thereby_o to_o establish_v his_o seed_n in_o his_o seat_n for_o ever_o etc._n etc._n he_o then_o suppose_v that_o he_o have_v utter_o suppress_v peto_n and_o his_o partaker_n lift_v up_o his_o voice_n and_o say_v i_o speak_v to_o thou_o peto_z which_o make_v thyself_o micheas_n that_o thou_o may_v speak_v evil_a of_o king_n but_o now_o thou_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v be_v flee_v for_o fear_n and_o shame_n as_o be_v unable_a to_o answer_v my_o argument_n and_o whilst_o he_o thus_o speak_v there_o be_v one_o elstow_n a_o fellow_n friar_z to_z peto_z stand_v in_o the_o roodloft_n who_o say_v to_o dr._n curwin_n good_a sir_n you_o know_v that_o father_n peto_n as_o he_o be_v command_v be_v now_o go_v to_o a_o provincial_a council_n hold_v at_o canterbury_n and_o not_o flee_v for_o fear_n of_o you_o for_o to_o morrow_n he_o will_v return_v again_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o be_o here_o as_o another_o micheas_n and_o will_v lay_v down_o my_o life_n to_o prove_v all_o those_o thing_n true_a which_o he_o have_v teach_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o this_o combat_n 〈◊〉_d challenge_v thou_o before_o god_n and_o all_o equal_a judge_n even_o unto_o thou_o curwin_n i_o say_v which_o art_n one_o of_o the_o four_o hundred_o false_a prophet_n into_o who_o the_o spirit_n of_o lie_v be_v enter_v and_o seek_v by_o adultery_n to_o establish_v a_o succession_n betray_v the_o king_n unto_o endless_a perdition_n more_o for_o thy_o own_o vain_a glory_n and_o hope_v of_o promotion_n than_o for_o discharge_v of_o thy_o clog_a conscience_n and_o the_o king_n salvation_n this_o elstow_n wax_v hot_a and_o speak_v very_o earnest_o so_o as_o they_o can_v not_o make_v he_o cease_v his_o speech_n until_o the_o king_n himself_o bid_v he_o hold_v his_o peace_n and_o give_v order_n that_o he_o and_o peto_z shall_v be_v convent_v before_o the_o council_n which_o be_v do_v the_o next_o day_n and_o when_o the_o lord_n have_v rebuke_v they_o than_o the_o earl_n of_o essex_n tell_v they_o that_o they_o have_v deserve_v to_o be_v put_v into_o a_o sack_n and_o cast_v into_o the_o thames_n whereunto_o elstow_n smile_v say_v threaten_v these_o thing_n to_o rich_a and_o dainty_a person_n who_o be_v clothe_v in_o purple_a fare_v delicious_o and_o have_v their_o chief_a hope_n in_o this_o world_n for_o we_o esteem_v they_o not_o but_o be_v joyful_a that_o for_o the_o discharge_n of_o our_o duty_n we_o be_v drive_v hence_o
new_a palace_n call_v sommerset-house_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n concern_v this_o example_n give_v of_o pull_v down_o of_o church_n according_a to_o this_o beginning_n all_o the_o year_n proceed_v in_o which_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v find_v but_o trouble_n commotion_n and_o disquiet_v both_o in_o church_n and_o state_n for_o about_o this_o time_n there_o start_v up_o a_o sect_n of_o man_n that_o be_v name_v gospeler_n who_o assert_v the_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n of_o calvin_n of_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o anabaptist_n who_o have_v keep_v themselves_o unto_o themselves_o in_o the_o late_a king_n time_n begin_v to_o look_v abroad_o and_o disperse_v their_o dotage_n for_o the_o prevention_n of_o which_o mischief_n before_o it_o grow_v to_o a_o head_n some_o of_o the_o chief_a of_o they_o be_v convent_v in_o the_o church_n of_o st._n paul_n before_o archbishop_n cranmer_n who_o in_o examine_v they_o take_v up_o his_o seat_n upon_o a_o altar_n of_o our_o lady_n these_o man_n be_v convict_v of_o their_o error_n some_o of_o they_o be_v dismiss_v only_o with_o a_o admonition_n other_o condemn_v to_o bear_v their_o faggot_n at_o st._n pauls-cross_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n concern_v these_o sect_n now_o the_o time_n draw_v on_o for_o the_o put_v forth_o the_o new_a liturgy_n which_o differ_v little_a in_o the_o main_a no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n from_o the_o latin_a service_n but_o notwithstanding_o the_o publish_v and_o command_v the_o use_n of_o this_o book_n yet_o many_o do_v celebrate_v their_o private_a mass_n in_o such_o secret_a place_n that_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o discover_v they_o more_o confident_o carry_v in_o the_o church_n of_o st._n paul_n in_o many_o chapel_n whereof_o by_o the_o bishop_n sufferance_n the_o former_a mass_n be_v keep_v up_o that_o be_v to_o say_v our_o lady_n mass_n the_o apostle_n mass_n etc._n etc._n perform_v in_o latin_a but_o disguise_v with_o english_a name_n of_o the_o apostle_n communion_n and_o our_o lady_n communion_n but_o these_o be_v afterward_o suppress_v thus_o dr._n heylyn_n concern_v the_o new_a liturgy_n a_o opposition_n against_o the_o new_a form_n of_o religion_n page_n 75._o upon_o the_o imposition_n of_o this_o book_n and_o a_o new_a form_n of_o religion_n obtrude_v many_o county_n take_v up_o arm_n to_o oppose_v it_o but_o yet_o so_o that_o they_o be_v present_o ready_a to_o lay_v down_o if_o the_o king_n will_v grant_v they_o some_o few_o demand_n whereof_o one_o be_v this_o to_o wit_n that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o we_o constant_o believe_v that_o after_o the_o priest_n have_v speak_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n be_v at_o mass_n there_o be_v very_o real_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n god_n and_o man_n and_o that_o no_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v after_o but_o the_o very_a self_n same_o body_n that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o be_v give_v upon_o the_o cross_n for_o our_o redemption_n therefore_o we_o desire_v to_o have_v mass_n celebrate_v as_o it_o be_v in_o time_n past_a because_o we_o find_v that_o many_o presume_v unworthy_o to_o receive_v the_o same_o put_v no_o difference_n between_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o other_o kind_n of_o meat_n some_o say_n that_o it_o be_v bread_n both_o before_o and_o after_o consecration_n and_o some_o again_o say_v that_o it_o be_v profitable_a to_o no_o man_n unless_o he_o receive_v it_o with_o many_o other_o abuse_v term_n second_o we_o desire_v that_o curate_n may_v administer_v baptism_n at_o all_o time_n of_o necessity_n as_o well_o upon_o weekday_n as_o holiday_n three_o that_o child_n may_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o bishop_n four_o that_o there_o may_v be_v holy-bread_n and_o holy-water_n in_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n precious_a body_n and_o blood_n five_o that_o our_o lord_n body_n be_v reserve_v in_o church_n six_o that_o priest_n may_v live_v unmarried_a seven_o that_o the_o six_o article_n set_v forth_o by_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o may_v be_v continue_v at_o least_o till_o the_o king_n come_v to_o full_a age._n they_o further_o make_v this_o remonstrance_n viz._n that_o the_o freeborn_a commonalty_n be_v oppress_v by_o a_o small_a number_n of_o gentry_n who_o glut_v themselves_o with_o pleasure_n whilst_o poor_a commons_o waste_v with_o daily_a labour_n do_v like_o packhorse_n live_v in_o extreme_a slavery_n second_o that_o holy_a rite_n establish_v by_o antiquity_n be_v abolish_v and_o new_a one_o authorize_v with_o a_o new_a form_n of_o religion_n obtrude_v to_o the_o subject_n of_o their_o soul_n to_o those_o horrid_a pain_n which_o no_o death_n can_v terminate_v and_o therefore_o three_o they_o declare_v that_o they_o think_v it_o necessary_a and_o convenient_a to_o have_v new_a counsellor_n place_v about_o the_o king_n during_o his_o minority_n with_o the_o remove_n of_o those_o who_o rule_v as_o they_o list_v confound_v thing_n sacred_a and_o profane_a regard_v nothing_o but_o the_o enrich_n themselves_o with_o the_o public_a treasure_n that_o they_o may_v riot_n it_o among_o those_o public_a calamity_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n concern_v this_o commotion_n but_o these_o man_n be_v soon_o suppress_v and_o the_o change_n go_v on_o as_o appear_v by_o this_o follow_a relation_n of_o dr_n heylyn_n pag._n 79._o but_o then_o there_o start_v up_o another_o faction_n as_o dangerous_a to_o the_o church_n as_o opposite_a to_o the_o public_a liturgy_n and_o as_o destructive_a of_o the_o rule_n of_o reformation_n then_o by_o law_n establish_v as_o be_v those_o of_o rome_n the_o archbishop_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prelate_n have_v so_o far_o proceed_v in_o abolish_n the_o religion_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n resolve_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o go_v forward_o with_o a_o further_a reformation_n in_o a_o particular_a point_n of_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n in_o order_n whereunto_o melancthon_n come_n be_v expect_v in_o the_o year_n before_o but_o he_o come_v not_o then_o and_o therefore_o letter_n be_v direct_v by_o the_o archbishop_n to_o martin_n bucer_n and_o nation_n peter_n martyr_n who_o be_v more_o addict_v to_o the_o zuinglian_a than_o the_o lutheran_n doctrine_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o sacrament_n martyr_n come_v over_o be_v make_v the_o king_n professor_n of_o divinity_n at_o oxford_n and_o about_o two_o year_n after_o make_v canon_n of_o christ's-church_n in_o his_o first_o lecture_n he_o be_v say_v by_o saunders_n if_o he_o may_v be_v credit_v to_o have_v declare_v himself_o so_o much_o a_o zuinglian_a in_o the_o point_n as_o to_o give_v great_a offence_n to_o cranmer_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n but_o afterward_o upon_o notice_n of_o it_o to_o have_v be_v more_o moderate_a and_o to_o conform_v his_o judgement_n to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o prelate_n but_o however_o it_o be_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o his_o readins_n be_v so_o much_o dislike_v by_o some_o of_o the_o university_n that_o a_o public_a disputation_n be_v short_o have_v betwixt_o he_o and_o some_o of_o those_o who_o dislike_v his_o do_n in_o which_o he_o public_o maintain_v these_o two_o proposition_n 1._o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o change_v 2._o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o carnal_o and_o bodily_a in_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o unite_v unto_o they_o sacramental_o when_o the_o disputation_n be_v end_v it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o open_a school_n that_o martyr_n have_v the_o upper_a hand_n and_o have_v sufficient_o answer_v all_o argument_n but_o chadsey_n the_o chief_a of_o the_o opponent_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o those_o that_o dispute_v with_o he_o acknowledge_v no_o such_o satisfaction_n to_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o their_o party_n noise_v it_o abroad_o that_o they_o have_v the_o victory_n but_o bucer_n not_o come_v over_o at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v earnest_o invite_v by_o the_o archbishops_n secretary_n upon_o which_o he_o come_v and_o present_o write_v to_o peter_n martyr_n be_v now_o settle_v here_o he_o receive_v letter_n from_o calvin_n by_o which_o he_o be_v advise_v to_o take_v heed_n of_o his_o old_a fault_n and_o to_o run_v a_o moderate_a course_n in_o his_o reformation_n the_o first_o thing_n that_o he_o do_v at_o his_o come_n hither_o be_v to_o make_v himself_o acquaint_v with_o the_o english_a liturgy_n of_o this_o he_o give_v account_n to_o calvin_n and_o desire_v some_o letter_n from_o he_o to_o the_o lord_n protector_n with_o who_o calvin_n have_v already_o begin_v to_o tamper_v that_o he_o may_v find_v the_o great_a favour_n from_o he_o he_o be_v send_v to_o take_v a_o chair_n at_o cambridge_n where_o his_o first_o readins_n give_v no_o such_o distaste_n as_o to_o put_v he_o to_o the_o necessity_n of_o challenge_v
glory_n which_o by_o rash_a talk_n and_o word_n many_o have_v pretend_v and_o in_o so_o do_v they_o shall_v best_o please_v god_n and_o live_v without_o danger_n of_o the_o law_n and_o maintain_v the_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o furthermore_o for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o sedition_n and_o false_a rumour_n have_v be_v nourish_v and_o maintain_v in_o this_o realm_n by_o the_o subtlety_n and_o malice_n of_o some_o evil-disposed_n person_n who_o take_v upon_o they_o without_o sufficient_a authority_n to_o preach_v and_o interpret_v the_o word_n of_o god_n after_o their_o own_o brain_n in_o church_n and_o other_o place_n both_o public_a and_o private_a and_o also_o by_o play_v interlude_n and_o print_v of_o false_a fond_a book_n ballad_n rhyme_n and_o other_o lewd_a treatise_n concern_v doctrine_n in_o matter_n now_o in_o question_n her_o highness_n therefore_o strict_o charge_v and_o command_n that_o nothing_o in_o this_o kind_n be_v evermore_o act_v thus_o dr._n heylyn_n relate_v her_o moderate_a proceed_n as_o to_o religion_n chap._n iii_o a_o full_a relation_n of_o the_o reconcile_n this_o nation_n to_o its_o former_a obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n anno_fw-la reg._n mar._n 2._o dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 41._o the_o next_o work_n be_v the_o reconcile_a this_o nation_n to_o its_o former_a obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o before_o the_o attempt_v this_o it_o be_v think_v fit_a to_o remove_v one_o difficulty_n which_o be_v most_o likely_a to_o hinder_v the_o progress_n of_o this_o design_n the_o difficulty_n be_v this_o there_o be_v a_o general_a fear_n that_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v restore_v to_o their_o former_a power_n the_o church_n may_v challenge_v restitution_n of_o her_o former_a possession_n now_o to_o secure_v they_o against_o this_o fear_n they_o have_v not_o only_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n but_o some_o assurance_n underhand_o from_o the_o cardinal_n legat_n who_o know_v right_o well_o that_o the_o church_n land_n have_v be_v so_o chap_v and_o change_v by_o the_o two_o last_o king_n as_o not_o to_o be_v restore_v without_o the_o manifest_a ruin_n of_o many_o of_o the_o nobility_n and_o most_o of_o the_o gentry_n who_o be_v invest_v in_o the_o same_o thus_o dr._n heylyn_n concern_v this_o obstacle_n which_o be_v remove_v the_o work_n go_v on_o the_o relation_n whereof_o be_v thus_o deliver_v by_o sir_n rich._n baker_n page_n 461._o cardinal_z pool_n be_v send_v for_o by_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n come_v over_o into_o england_n from_o rome_n as_o legat_n à_fw-fr latere_fw-la whereupon_o a_o parliament_n be_v call_v and_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n sit_v there_o under_o a_o cloth_n of_o state_n with_o the_o cardinal_n on_o their_o right_a hand_n all_o the_o lord_n knight_n and_o burgess_n be_v present_a the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n lord_n chancellor_z make_v a_o short_a speech_n signify_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n cardinal_n and_o that_o he_o be_v send_v from_o the_o pope_n as_o his_o legate_n à_fw-fr latere_fw-la to_o do_v a_o work_n tend_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o benefit_n of_o they_o all_o which_o say_v he_o you_o may_v better_o hear_v from_o his_o own_o mouth_n thus_o sir_n rich._n baker_n dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 41._o then_o the_o cardinal_n rise_v up_o and_o make_v a_o very_a grave_n and_o eloquent_a speech_n first_o giving_z they_o thanks_o for_o be_v restore_v unto_o his_o country_n in_o recompense_n whereof_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o be_v come_v to_o restore_v they_o to_o the_o country_n and_o court_n of_o heaven_n from_o which_o by_o their_o departure_n from_o the_o church_n they_o have_v be_v estrange_v he_o therefore_o earnest_o exhort_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v their_o error_n and_o cheerful_o to_o receive_v the_o benefit_n which_o christ_n be_v ready_a by_o his_o vicar_n to_o extend_v unto_o they_o his_o speech_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v long_o and_o artificial_a but_o it_o conclude_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o he_o have_v the_o key_n to_o open_v they_o away_o into_o the_o church_n which_o they_o have_v shut_v against_o themselves_o by_o make_v so_o many_o law_n to_o the_o dishonour_n and_o reproach_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a on_o the_o revoke_v of_o which_o law_n they_o shall_v find_v he_o ready_a to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o key_n in_o open_v of_o the_o door_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o they_o it_o be_v conclude_v hereupon_o by_o both_o house_n of_o parliament_n that_o a_o petition_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o kingdom_n wherein_o shall_v be_v declare_v how_o sorry_a they_o be_v that_o they_o have_v withdraw_v their_o obedience_n from_o the_o apostolic_a see_v and_o consent_v to_o the_o statute_n make_v against_o it_o promise_v to_o do_v their_o best_a endeavour_n hereafter_o that_o the_o say_a law_n and_o statute_n shall_v be_v repeal_v beseech_v the_o king_n and_o queen_n to_o intercede_v for_o they_o with_o his_o holiness_n that_o they_o may_v be_v absolve_v from_o their_o crime_n and_o censure_n which_o they_o have_v incur_v and_o be_v receive_v as_o penitent_a child_n into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n these_o thing_n be_v thus_o resolve_v upon_o both_o house_n be_v call_v again_o to_o the_o court_n on_o sr._n andrews_n day_n where_o be_v assemble_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n they_o be_v ask_v by_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n gardiner_n whether_o they_o be_v please_v that_o pardon_n shall_v be_v demand_v of_o the_o legate_n and_o whether_o they_o will_v return_v to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o obedience_n of_o the_o pope_n supreme_a head_n thereof_o to_o which_o they_o assent_v the_o petition_n be_v present_v to_o their_o majesty_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o parliament_n which_o be_v public_o read_v they_o arise_v with_o a_o purpose_n to_o have_v move_v the_o cardinal_n in_o it_o who_o meet_v their_o desire_n declare_v his_o readiness_n in_o give_v they_o that_o satisfaction_n which_o they_o will_v have_v crave_v and_o have_v cause_v the_o authority_n give_v he_o by_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v public_o read_v he_o show_v how_o acceptable_a the_o repentance_n of_o a_o sinner_n be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o very_a angel_n in_o heaven_n rejoice_v at_o the_o conversion_n of_o this_o kingdom_n which_o say_v they_o all_o kneel_v upon_o their_o knee_n and_o implore_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n receive_v absolution_n for_o themselves_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o absolution_n be_v pronounce_v in_o these_o follow_a word_n viz._n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o with_o his_o most_o precious_a blood_n have_v redeem_v and_o wash_v we_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n that_o he_o may_v purchase_v to_o himself_o a_o glorious_a spouse_n without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n and_o who_o the_o father_n have_v appoint_v head_n over_o all_o his_o church_n he_o by_o his_o mercy_n absolve_v you_o and_o we_o by_o apostolical_a authority_n give_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o holiness_n pope_n julius_n the_o 3d._n his_o vicegerent_n here_o on_o earth_n do_v absolve_v and_o free_v you_o and_o every_o one_o of_o you_o with_o the_o whole_a realm_n and_o the_o dominion_n thereof_o from_o all_o heresy_n and_o schism_n and_o from_o all_o and_o every_o judgement_n censure_n and_o pain_n for_o that_o cause_n incur_v and_o also_o we_o do_v restore_v you_o again_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o our_o mother_n the_o holy_a church_n as_o in_o our_o letter_n more_o plain_o it_o shall_v appear_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o word_n of_o his_o be_v second_v by_o a_o loud_a amen_o by_o such_o as_o be_v present_a he_o conclude_v that_o day_n work_v with_o a_o solemn_a procession_n to_o the_o chapel_n for_o render_v prayer_n and_o thanks_o to_o almighty_a god_n and_o because_o this_o great_a work_n be_v wrought_v on_o st._n andrews_n day_n the_o cardinal_n procure_v a_o decree_n or_o canon_n to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n that_o from_o thenceforth_o the_o feast_n of_o st._n andrews-day_n shall_v be_v keep_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o a_o majus_n duplex_fw-la as_o the_o ritual_n call_v it_o and_o celebrate_v with_o as_o much_o solemnity_n as_o any_o other_o in_o the_o year_n it_o be_v think_v fit_a also_o that_o the_o action_n of_o that_o day_n shall_v be_v communicate_v on_o the_o sunday_n follow_v at_o st._n paul_n cross_n in_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o lord_n mayor_n aldermen_z and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o city_n according_a to_o which_o appointment_n the_o cardinal_n go_v from_o lambeth_n by_o water_n and_o land_v at_o st._n paul's-wharf_n from_o thence_o proceed_v to_o the_o church_n with_o a_o cross_n two_o pillar_n
and_o two_o pole-ax_n of_o silver_n bear_v before_o he_o receive_v by_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n with_o a_o solemn_a procession_n they_o tarry_v till_o the_o king_n come_v from_o westminster_n immediate_o upon_o who_o come_v the_o lord_n chancellor_n go_v into_o the_o pulpit_n and_o preach_v upon_o those_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n rom._n 13._o brethren_n you_o be_v to_o know_v that_o it_o be_v now_o time_n to_o rise_v from_o sleep_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o sermon_n he_o declare_v what_o have_v be_v do_v on_o the_o friday_n before_o in_o the_o submission_n which_o be_v make_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o in_o the_o name_n of_o themselves_o and_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o the_o absolution_n grant_v to_o they_o by_o the_o cardinal_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o do_v and_o prayer_n be_v make_v for_o the_o whole_a estate_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o company_n be_v for_o that_o time_n dismiss_v and_o on_o the_o thursday_n after_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n then_o assemble_v in_o their_o convocation_n present_v themselves_o before_o the_o cardinal_n at_o lambeth_n and_o kneel_v reverent_o on_o their_o knee_n they_o obtain_v pardon_n for_o all_o their_o perjury_n schism_n and_o heresy_n upon_o which_o a_o formal_a absolution_n be_v pronounce_v that_o so_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n may_v partake_v of_o the_o pope_n benediction_n and_o thereby_o testify_v their_o obedience_n and_o submission_n to_o he_o the_o news_n whereof_o come_v to_o the_o pope_n he_o cause_v not_o only_o many_o solemn_a procession_n to_o be_v make_v in_o rome_n and_o most_o part_n of_o italy_n but_o proclaim_v a_o jubilee_n to_o be_v hold_v on_o the_o 24_o the_o of_o december_n than_o next_o come_n for_o the_o anticipate_v of_o which_o solemnity_n he_o allege_v this_o reason_n that_o it_o become_v he_o to_o imitate_v the_o father_n of_o the_o prodigal_a child_n and_o have_v receive_v his_o lose_a son_n not_o only_o to_o express_v a_o domestical_a joy_n but_o likewise_o to_o invite_v all_o other_o to_o partake_v thereof_o during_o this_o parliament_n be_v hold_v a_o convocation_n also_o as_o before_o be_v intimate_v by_o who_o a_o petition_n be_v prepare_v to_o be_v present_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o convocation_n to_o both_o their_o majesty_n humble_o beseech_v they_o that_o they_o will_v be_v please_v to_o intercede_v with_o the_o cardinal_n not_o to_o insist_v on_o the_o restore_n of_o church-land_n which_o petition_n be_v not_o easy_a to_o be_v meet_v withal_o and_o never_o print_v before_o be_v here_o subjoin_v according_a to_o the_o tenor_n and_o effect_v thereof_o in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n we_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n of_o the_o province_n of_o canterbury_n assemble_v in_o convocation_n during_o the_o sit_v of_o this_o parliament_n according_a to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n with_o all_o due_a reverence_n and_o humility_n do_v make_v know_v to_o your_o majesty_n that_o though_o we_o be_v appoint_v to_o take_v upon_o we_o the_o care_n and_o charge_n of_o all_o those_o church_n in_o which_o we_o be_v place_v as_o bishop_n dean_n arch-deacon_n priest_n or_o vicar_n as_o also_o of_o the_o soul_n therein_o commit_v to_o we_o together_o with_o all_o good_n right_n and_o privilege_n thereunto_o belong_v according_a to_o the_o true_a intent_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o canon_n make_v in_o that_o behalf_n and_o that_o in_o this_o respect_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o use_v all_o lawful_a mean_n for_o the_o recovery_n of_o those_o good_n right_n privilege_n and_o jurisdiction_n which_o have_v be_v lose_v in_o the_o late_a desperate_a and_o pernicious_a schism_n and_o to_o regain_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o church_n as_o in_o her_o f●…rst_a and_o right_a estate_n yet_o notwithstanding_o have_v take_v mature_a deliberation_n of_o the_o whole_a matter_n among_o ourselves_o we_o can_v but_o 〈◊〉_d confess_v that_o we_o know_v well_o how_o ●…ifficult_a a_o th●…ng_n if_o not_o impossible_a it_o be_v to_o recove●…_n t●…e_v say_v good_n unto_o their_o church_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o manifold_a unavoidable_a contract_n sales_n and_o alienation_n which_o have_v be_v make_v about_o the_o same_o and_o that_o if_o any_o such_o thing_n shall_v be_v attempt_v it_o will_v not_o only_o redound_v to_o the_o disturbance_n of_o the_o public_a peace_n but_o be_v a_o mean_n that_o the_o unity_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o by_o the_o goodness_n of_o your_o majesty_n have_v be_v so_o happy_o begin_v can_v not_o obtain_v its_o desire_a effect_n without_o very_o great_a difficulty_n wheresore_n prefer_v the_o public_a good_a and_o quiet_a of_o the_o kingdom_n before_o our_o own_o private_a interest_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o so_o many_o soul_n redeem_v with_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n before_o any_o earthly_a thing_n whatsoever_o and_o not_o seek_v our_o own_o but_o the_o thing_n of_o jesus_n christ_n we_o do_v most_o earnest_o and_o most_o humble_o beseech_v your_o majesty_n that_o you_o will_v gracious_o vouchsafe_v to_o intercede_v in_o our_o behalf_n with_o the_o most_o reverend_a father_n in_o god_n the_o lord_n cardinal_n pool_n legat_n à_fw-fr latere_fw-la from_o his_o holiness_n that_o he_o will_v please_v to_o settle_v and_o confirm_v the_o say_v good_n of_o the_o church_n either_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n as_o he_o think_v most_o fit_a on_o the_o present_a occupant_n thereof_o according_a to_o the_o power_n and_o faculty_n commit_v to_o he_o thereby_o prefer_v the_o public_a good_a before_o the_o private_a the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o realm_n before_o suit_n and_o trouble_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n before_o earthly_a treasure_n and_o for_o our_o part_n we_o do_v both_o now_o and_o for_o all_o time_n come_v consent_n to_o all_o and_o every_o thing_n which_o by_o the_o say_a lord_n legat_n shall_v in_o this_o case_n be_v final_o ordain_v and_o conclude_v on_o humble_o beseech_v your_o majesty_n to_o persuade_v the_o lord_n cardinal_n not_o to_o be_v too_o strict_a and_o difficult_a in_o the_o business_n and_o we_o do_v further_o beseech_v your_o majesty_n to_o take_v such_o course_n that_o our_o ecclesiastical_a right_n liberty_n and_o jurisdiction_n which_o have_v be_v take_v from_o we_o by_o the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o former_a time_n and_o without_o which_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o discharge_v our_o common_a duty_n either_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o pastoral_n office_n or_o the_o cure_n of_o soul_n commit_v to_o our_o ●…rust_n and_o care_n may_v be_v again_o restore_v unto_o we_o and_o be_v perpetual_o preserve_v inviolable_o both_o to_o we_o and_o our_o church_n and_o that_o all_o law_n which_o have_v be_v make_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o this_o our_o jurisdiction_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a liberty_n or_o otherwise_o have_v prove_v a_o hindrance_n to_o it_o may_v be_v repeal_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o temporal_a and_o spiritual_a profit_n both_o of_o your_o majesty_n and_o this_o realm_n give_v ourselves_o assure_v hope_n that_o your_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n according_a to_o your_o singular_a piety_n to_o almighty_a god_n for_o so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a benefit_n receive_v from_o he_o will_v not_o be_v want_v to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o church_n have_v cure_n of_o soul_n but_o that_o you_o will_v consider_v and_o provide_v as_o need_n shall_v be_v for_o the_o peace_n thereof_o which_o petition_n be_v thus_o draw_v up_o be_v humble_o offer_v to_o the_o legate_n and_o be_v assent_v unto_o there_o be_v a_o general_n and_o solemn_a procession_n throughout_o london_n to_o give_v thanks_o for_o their_o conversion_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o this_o procession_n there_o be_v ninety_o cross_n a_o hundred_o and_o six_o priest_n in_o cope_n eight_o bishop_n in_o pontificalibus_fw-la follow_v by_o bonner_n bishop_n of_o london_n carry_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n under_o a_o canopy_n attend_v by_o the_o lord_n mayor_n and_o company_n in_o their_o several_a livery_n which_o solemn_a procession_n be_v end_v they_o all_o return_v into_o the_o church_n of_o st._n paul_n where_o the_o king_n and_o cardinal_n together_o with_o all_o the_o rest_n hear_v mass_n and_o the_o next_o day_n the_o parliament_n and_o convocation_n be_v dissolve_v thus_o large_o dr._n heylyn_n concern_v this_o great_a solemnity_n for_o a_o more_o full_a satisfaction_n in_o this_o relation_n i_o will_v here_o insert_v some_o act_n make_v in_o this_o parliament_n in_o order_n to_o this_o business_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o statute_n book_n a_o act_n for_o repeal_n of_o all_o statute_n article_n and_o provision_n make_v against_o the_o see_v apostolic_a since_o the_o twenty_o year_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o whereas_o since_o the_o twenty_o year_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o much_o false_a and_o erroneous_a doctrine_n have_v be_v teach_v
your_o great_a forefather_n endow_v their_o mother_n church_n with_o fair_a and_o large_a revenue_n make_v it_o still_o their_o great_a care_n to_o keep_v she_o upright_o able_a still_o in_o freedom_n and_o will_v you_o give_v consent_n that_o like_o a_o servile_a bondmaid_n she_o now_o sink_v low_a to_o a_o naked_a thraldom_n and_o by_o degree_n be_v force_v from_o her_o mansion_n if_o not_o to_o what_o end_n serve_v the_o flux_n of_o these_o petition_n that_o taint_v your_o ear_n with_o language_n far_o unfit_a the_o ear_n of_o christian_a prince_n these_o strike_v not_o at_o the_o wither_a branch_n but_o at_o the_o tree_n on_o which_o religion_n grow_v certain_o all_o be_v not_o guilty_a admit_v that_o some_o as_o they_o enforce_v or_o urge_v be_v vicious_a must_v it_o conclude_v there_o be_v none_o good_a among_o we_o or_o able_a to_o reform_v their_o proper_a vice_n will_v you_o assume_v a_o power_n till_o now_o unheard_a of_o to_o give_v away_o their_o rite_n by_o new_a make_v statute_n if_o you_o will_v seek_v and_o sist_z our_o constitution_n you_o shall_v there_o find_v as_o strict_a injunction_n as_o you_o can_v make_v for_o reformation_n but_o i_o suppose_v it_o be_v not_o that_o be_v aim_v at_o pretence_n of_o restauration_n or_o reformation_n tend_v to_o ruin_v else_o such_o beginning_n can_v not_o find_v such_o favour_n my_o lord_n consider_v well_o your_o action_n be_v advise_v this_o cause_n seem_v only_o we_o it_o will_v be_v you_o if_o that_o the_o mother_n church_n do_v feel_v injustice_n your_o turn_n be_v next_o to_o feel_v the_o like_a oppression_n when_o faith_n begin_v to_o fail_v than_o all_o must_v perish_v heretic_n or_o heretical_a fancy_n taint_v the_o common_a people_n who_o novelty_n betray_v even_o to_o perdition_n let_v neighbour_n nation_n tell_v you_o your_o own_o story_n husse_o luther_n and_o such_o frantic_a teacher_n cry_v out_o against_o the_o church_n in_o all_o their_o sermon_n they_o do_v pretend_v nothing_o else_o but_o reformation_n when_o they_o themselves_o be_v deep_a die_v in_o mischief_n what_o follow_v they_o to_o wit_n perdition_n we_o may_v expect_v in_o justice_n the_o church_n wealth_n occasion_v this_o first_o move_v if_o that_o be_v poor_a our_o vice_n will_v be_v virtue_n and_o none_o will_v be_v so_o forward_o to_o accuse_v we_o what_o can_v we_o look_v for_o then_o but_o desolation_n where_o private_a end_n be_v make_v a_o public_a grievance_n our_o lesser_a house_n be_v desire_v from_o we_o not_o that_o their_o value_n do_v deserve_v the_o motion_n but_o that_o the_o great_a may_v succeed_v their_o fortune_n which_o soon_o will_v follow_v if_o the_o gap_n be_v open_v the_o king_n himself_o i_o hope_v be_v too_o too_o gracious_a to_o set_v abroach_o a_o action_n so_o disorder_v nor_o can_v i_o think_v the_o low_a house_n of_o commons_o will_v be_v so_o blind_a to_z second_o this_o loose_a motion_n some_o giddy-brain_n who_o fade_a fortune_n lead_v he_o to_o hope_v to_o raise_v himself_o out_o of_o our_o ruin_n betray_v their_o judgement_n with_o a_o show_n of_o justice_n which_o seek_v in_o truth_n but_o mere_o innovation_n which_o must_v succeed_v unless_o you_o do_v oppose_v it_o wherefore_o my_o lord_n call_v back_o that_o ancient_a virtue_n that_o so_o long_a time_n have_v sit_v in_o these_o your_o place_n now_o be_v the_o time_n to_o show_v your_o worth_n the_o church_n implore_v it_o the_o church_n which_o you_o acknowledge_v for_o your_o mother_n if_o liberty_n take_v place_n of_o faith_n farewell_n religion_n the_o turk_n may_v then_o direct_v we_o how_o to_o guide_v in_o rapine_n blood_n and_o murder_n foul_a dissension_n proceed_v from_o want_n of_o good_a devotion_n the_o lack_n of_o faith_n beget_v these_o strange_a conception_n which_o time_n will_v make_v stark_o dead_a if_o we_o continue_v thus_o of_o this_o speech_n now_o we_o will_v proceed_v to_o relate_v what_o occur_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n as_o touch_v matter_n of_o religion_n chap._n i._n of_o her_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a and_o be_v crown_v by_o a_o catholic_n bishop_n anno_fw-la reg._n eliz._n i._n how_o be_v upon_o stow_n pag._n 635._o the_o princess_n elizabeth_n be_v proclaim_v queen_n cause_v these_o solemn_a rite_n to_o be_v perform_v for_o her_o sister_n and_o charles_n the_o emperor_n in_o the_o abbey-church_n of_o westminster_n the_o corpse_n of_o queen_n mary_n be_v very_o royal_o inter_v with_o all_o solemn_a funeral_n rite_n and_o a_o mass_n of_o requiem_n in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o in_o like_a princely_a manner_n be_v perform_v solemn_a obsequy_n for_o the_o late_a famous_a emperor_n charles_n the_o five_o thus_o howes_n her_o coronation_n she_o be_v crown_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o roman_a pontifical_a by_o dr._n owen_n oglethorpe_n bishop_n of_o carlisle_n the_o only_a man_n among_o all_o the_o bishop_n who_o can_v be_v wrought_v on_o by_o she_o to_o perform_v that_o office_n whether_o it_o be_v that_o they_o see_v some_o alteration_n come_v to_o which_o they_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o yield_v conformity_n or_o for_o some_o other_o reason_n be_v not_o certain_o know_v the_o bishop_n of_o ely_n have_v a_o particular_a reason_n for_o his_o refuse_v this_o because_o he_o have_v be_v one_o of_o those_o that_o be_v send_v to_o rome_n to_o render_v the_o submission_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o the_o pope_n still_o live_v and_o therefore_o can_v not_o now_o appear_v with_o honour_n in_o any_o such_o action_n as_o seem_v to_o carry_v with_o it_o a_o repugnancy_n if_o not_o a_o manifest_a inconsistency_n with_o the_o same_o engagement_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v three_o bishop_n yet_o alive_a of_o king_n edward_n make_v all_o of_o they_o zealous_o affect_v to_o the_o reformation_n and_o possible_o it_o may_v seem_v strange_a that_o the_o queen_n receive_v not_o the_o crown_n rather_o from_o one_o of_o their_o hand_n than_o to_o put_v herself_o to_o the_o hazard_n of_o so_o many_o denial_n as_o have_v be_v give_v she_o by_o the_o other_o but_o unto_o this_o it_o may_v be_v answer_v that_o the_o say_a bishop_n at_o that_o time_n be_v deprive_v of_o their_o see_v and_o therefore_o not_o in_o a_o capacity_n to_o perform_v that_o service_n beside_o there_o be_v at_o that_o time_n no_o other_o form_n establish_v for_o a_o coronation_n than_o that_o which_o have_v much_o in_o it_o of_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n she_o be_v not_o sure_a that_o any_o of_o the_o say_v three_o bishop_n will_v have_v act_v in_o it_o without_o such_o alteration_n and_o omission_n in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o the_o order_n as_o may_v have_v render_v the_o action_n questionable_a among_o captious_a men._n and_o therefore_o final_o she_o think_v it_o more_o conducible_a to_o her_o reputation_n among_o foreign_a prince_n to_o be_v crown_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o catholic_n bishop_n or_o one_o at_o least_o that_o be_v account_v such_o than_o if_o it_o have_v be_v do_v by_o any_o of_o the_o other_o religion_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n but_o notwithstanding_o these_o solemnity_n and_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o catholic_n religion_n in_o all_o thing_n not_o only_o by_o permission_n but_o also_o by_o command_n which_o sufficient_o manifest_a that_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o humane_a policy_n in_o the_o conduct_n of_o this_o affair_n yet_o a_o change_n of_o religion_n be_v design_v as_o will_v appear_v by_o what_o shall_v be_v here_o say_v chap._n ii_o of_o the_o policy_n use_v and_o strange_a manner_n of_o introduce_v this_o follow_a change_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o the_o consequence_n of_o it_o to_o wit_n a_o general_a confusion_n in_o all_o matter_n of_o religion_n dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 103._o queen_n elizabeth_z know_v full_a well_o that_o her_o legitimation_n and_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n can_v not_o stand_v together_o and_o that_o she_o can_v not_o possible_o maintain_v the_o one_o without_o a_o discard_n of_o the_o other_o but_o in_o this_o case_n it_o concern_v she_o to_o walk_v very_o wary_o and_o not_o to_o unmask_v herself_o too_o much_o at_o once_o before_o she_o have_v put_v herself_o into_o a_o posture_n of_o ability_n to_o make_v good_a her_o action_n notwithstanding_o upon_o a_o serious_a debate_n of_o all_o particular_n she_o be_v resolve_v to_o proceed_v to_o a_o reformation_n as_o the_o time_n shall_v serve_v in_o order_n whereunto_o she_o constitute_v her_o privy_a council_n which_o she_o compound_v of_o such_o ingredient_n as_o may_v neither_o give_v encouragement_n to_o any_o of_o those_o who_o wish_v well_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o alienate_v their_o affection_n from_o she_o who_o heart_n be_v more_o incline_v to_o the_o reformation_n now_o as_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n mary_n hope_v thereby_o to_o obtain_v her_o favour_n
begin_v to_o build_v new_a altar_n and_o set_v up_o the_o mass_n so_o fare_v it_o now_o with_o the_o zealot_n among_o the_o protestant_n who_o measure_v the_o queen_n affection_n by_o their_o own_o or_o else_o presume_v that_o their_o error_n will_v be_v take_v for_o a_o honest_a zeal_n employ_v themselves_o as_o busy_o in_o the_o demolish_n of_o altar_n and_o deface_v of_o image_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v license_v and_o command_v to_o it_o by_o some_o legal_a warrant_n it_o happen_v also_o that_o some_o of_o the_o minister_n who_o remain_v at_o home_n and_o other_o which_o return_v in_o great_a number_n from_o beyond_o the_o sea_n have_v put_v themselves_o into_o the_o pulpit_n and_o bitter_o enveigh_v against_o the_o superstition_n and_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o papist_n accuse_v the_o other_o of_o heresy_n schism_n innovation_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n for_o the_o suppress_v of_o which_o disorder_n the_o queen_n command_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o dispute_n concern_v religion_n and_o that_o no_o man_n of_o what_o persuasion_n soever_o he_o be_v shall_v be_v suffer_v to_o preach_v in_o public_a but_o only_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v license_v which_o command_n and_o proclamation_n be_v so_o strict_o observe_v that_o no_o sermon_n be_v preach_v at_o st._n paul_n cross_n or_o any_o public_a place_n in_o london_n till_o the_o easter_n follow_v at_o which_o time_n when_o the_o preacher_n be_v to_o go_v into_o the_o pulpit_n the_o door_n be_v lock_v and_o the_o key_n thereof_o not_o to_o be_v find_v so_o that_o a_o smith_n be_v send_v for_o to_o break_v open_a the_o door_n and_o that_o be_v do_v the_o like_a necessity_n be_v find_v of_o cleanse_v and_o make_v sweet_a the_o place_n which_o by_o a_o long_a disuse_n have_v contract_v so_o much_o filth_n and_o nastiness_n as_o render_v it_o unfit_a for_o a_o present_a sermon_n by_o another_o proclamation_n it_o be_v enjoin_v that_o no_o man_n of_o what_o quality_n or_o degree_n soever_o shall_v presume_v to_o alter_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o state_n of_o religion_n or_o innovate_v in_o any_o of_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n thereunto_o belong_v but_o that_o all_o such_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n shall_v be_v observe_v in_o all_o parish_n church_n of_o the_o kingdom_n as_o be_v then_o use_v and_o retain_v in_o her_o majesty_n chapel_n until_o some_o further_a order_n shall_v be_v take_v in_o it_o only_o it_o be_v permit_v that_o the_o litany_n shall_v be_v say_v in_o the_o english_a tongue_n as_o likewise_o the_o epistle_n and_o gospel_n at_o the_o time_n of_o high_a mass_n which_o be_v according_o do_v in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o london_n on_o the_o next_o sunday_n after_o and_o by_o degree_n in_o all_o the_o other_o church_n of_o the_o kingdom_n further_o than_o this_o she_o think_v it_o not_o convenient_a to_o proceed_v at_o the_o present_a only_o she_o command_v the_o priest_n or_o bishop_n for_o some_o say_v it_o be_v the_o one_o and_o some_o the_o other_o who_o officiated_n at_o the_o altar_n in_o the_o chapel_n royal_a not_o to_o make_v any_o elevation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o better_a to_o prevent_v the_o adoration_n which_o be_v give_v to_o it_o which_o she_o can_v not_o suffer_v to_o be_v do_v in_o her_o sight_n without_o a_o most_o apparent_a wrong_n to_o her_o judgement_n and_o conscience_n which_o be_v make_v know_v in_o other_o place_n and_o all_o other_o church_n be_v command_v to_o conform_v themselves_o to_o the_o example_n of_o her_o chapel_n the_o elevation_n be_v forbear_v also_o in_o most_o other_o place_n and_o though_o there_o be_v no_o further_a progress_n make_v towards_o a_o reformation_n by_o any_o public_a act_n or_o edict_n yet_o secret_o a_o reformation_n in_o the_o form_n of_o worship_n and_o consequent_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n be_v both_o intend_a and_o project_v thus_o far_o dr._n heylyn_n '_o concern_v '_o the_o policy_n use_v in_o make_v this_o change_n this_o relation_n be_v thus_o otherwise_o deliver_v by_o sir_n rich._n baker_n pag._n 474._o queen_n elizabeth_n intend_v a_o alteration_n of_o religion_n will_v not_o do_v it_o all_o at_o once_o and_o upon_o the_o sudden_a but_o by_o little_a and_o little_a as_o at_o first_o she_o permit_v only_o the_o epistle_n and_o gospel_n of_o the_o day_n to_o be_v read_v at_o mass_n in_o english_a but_o in_o all_o other_o matter_n they_o be_v to_o follow_v the_o roman_a rite_n and_o custom_n until_o order_n can_v be_v take_v for_o establish_v religion_n by_o authority_n of_o parliament_n and_o a_o severe_a proclamation_n be_v set_v out_o prohibit_v all_o disputation_n of_o religion_n by_o which_o mean_v she_o both_o put_v the_o protestant_n in_o hope_n and_o put_v not_o papist_n out_o of_o hope_n yet_o private_o she_o commit_v the_o correct_v of_o the_o book_n of_o common-prayer_n set_v forth_o in_o the_o english_a tongue_n under_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o to_o the_o care_n and_o diligence_n of_o dr._n parker_n and_o other_o but_o the_o matter_n be_v carry_v on_o so_o close_o that_o it_o be_v not_o communicate_v to_o any_o but_o the_o marquis_n of_o northampton_n the_o earl_n of_o bedford_n and_o sir_n william_n cecil_n soon_o after_o this_o the_o use_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o both_o kind_n be_v by_o parliament_n allow_v and_o within_o two_o or_o three_o month_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v abolish_v and_o the_o liturgy_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n establish_v though_o as_o some_o say_v but_o with_o the_o difference_n of_o six_o voice_n in_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o the_o next_o month_n the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n and_o other_o and_o the_o month_n follow_v image_n be_v remove_v out_o of_o the_o church_n break_a and_o burn_v by_o these_o degree_n religion_n in_o england_n be_v change_v the_o supremacy_n confirm_v to_o the_o queen_n as_o many_o of_o the_o bishop_n as_o refuse_v to_o take_v the_o oath_n be_v present_o deprive_v of_o their_o bishopric_n and_o protestant_a bishop_n put_v in_o the_o possession_n of_o they_o thus_o sir_n rich._n baker_n relate_v this_o strange_a manner_n of_o change_a religion_n by_o degree_n a_o necessary_a consequence_n of_o these_o proceed_n be_v a_o general_a confusion_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v thus_o set_v down_o by_o howes_n upon_o stow_n pag._n 635._o at_o this_o time_n the_o english_a nation_n be_v wonderful_o divide_v in_o opinion_n as_o well_o in_o matter_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n as_o in_o divers_a point_n of_o religion_n by_o reason_n of_o three_o change_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o twelve_o year_n every_o one_o of_o these_o vary_v from_o that_o which_o be_v authorize_v by_o henry_n the_o eight_o for_o king_n henry_n assume_v the_o ecclesiastical_a supremacy_n with_o the_o first_o fruit_n and_o ten_o maintain_v seven_o sacrament_n with_o obit_n and_o mass_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a king_n edward_n abolish_v the_o mass_n authorize_v a_o book_n of_o common-prayer_n in_o english_a with_o hallow_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n etc._n etc._n and_o establish_v only_o two_o sacrament_n queen_n mary_n restore_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n reduce_v all_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n to_o the_o papal_a obedience_n with_o restitution_n of_o first_o fruit_n and_o ten_o permit_v nothing_o within_o her_o realm_n and_o dominion_n repugnant_a to_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n queen_n elizabeth_z in_o her_o first_o parliament_n expel_v the_o papal_a supremacy_n resume_v the_o first_o fruit_n and_o ten_o suppress_v the_o mass_n and_o for_o the_o general_a uniformity_n of_o her_o dominion_n establish_v the_o book_n of_o common-prayer_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n forbid_v all_o other_o thus_o stow_n '_o concern_v these_o prodigious_a change_n in_o religion_n make_v by_o public_a authority_n chap._n iii_o of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o establishment_n of_o this_o last_o change_n of_o religion_n by_o parliament_n and_o of_o a_o speech_n make_v in_o parliament_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o queen_n supremacy_n dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 107._o now_o a_o parliament_n draw_v on_o summon_v chief_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o reformation_n which_o be_v therein_o to_o be_v establish_v the_o queen_n design_n in_o order_n to_o it_o can_v not_o be_v so_o close_o carry_v but_o that_o such_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n as_o have_v the_o manage_n of_o election_n in_o their_o several_a county_n retain_v such_o man_n for_o member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o as_o they_o conceive_v most_o likely_a to_o comply_v with_o their_o intention_n for_o a_o reformation_n among_o who_o none_o appear_v more_o active_a than_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n the_o earl_n of_o arundel_n and_o sir_n william_n cecil_n in_o this_o parliament_n there_o pass_v a_o act_n for_o restore_a to_o the_o crown_n the_o ten_o and_o
first-fruit_n for_o the_o better_a draw_v on_o of_o which_o concession_n it_o be_v pretend_v that_o the_o patrimony_n of_o the_o crown_n have_v be_v much_o dilapidate_v and_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v support_v with_o such_o honour_n as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v if_o restitution_n be_v not_o make_v of_o such_o rent_n as_o be_v of_o late_o dismember_v from_o it_o upon_o which_o ground_n they_o also_o pass_v a_o act_n for_o the_o dissolution_n of_o all_o such_o monastery_n convent_v and_o religious_a order_n as_o have_v be_v found_v and_o establish_v by_o the_o queen_n decease_v when_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n concern_v the_o supremacy_n come_v to_o be_v debate_v it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o thing_n abhorrent_n even_o in_o nature_n and_o policy_n that_o a_o woman_n shall_v be_v declare_v supreme_a head_n on_o earth_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o those_o of_o the_o reform_a party_n mean_v nothing_o else_o than_o to_o contend_v about_o word_n so_o they_o may_v gain_v the_o point_n they_o aim_v at_o which_o be_v the_o strip_v of_o the_o pope_n of_o all_o authority_n within_o these_o dominion_n and_o fix_v the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a power_n in_o the_o crown_n imperial_a and_o this_o they_o do_v not_o by_o the_o name_n of_o supreme_a head_n which_o they_o perceive_v may_v be_v liable_a to_o some_o just_a exception_n but_o which_o come_v all_o to_o one_o of_o supreme_a governess_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n i_o will_v here_o insert_v a_o speech_n make_v in_o this_o parliament_n against_o this_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a or_o spiritual_a authority_n grant_v to_o the_o queen_n the_o person_n that_o speak_v it_o be_v nicholas_n heath_n who_o be_v first_o bishop_n of_o worcester_n and_o lord_n precedent_n of_o wales_n afterward_o archbishop_n of_o york_n and_o ambassador_n into_o germany_n and_o make_v lord_n chancellor_n of_o england_n by_z queen_n marry_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1555_o and_o continue_v until_o he_o do_v surrender_v it_o up_o in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n to_o sir_n nicholas_n bacon_n the_o person_n from_o who_o i_o have_v this_o speech_n be_v yet_o live_v who_o tell_v i_o that_o he_o find_v it_o in_o manuscript_n among_o paper_n and_o note_n of_o his_o great_a grandfather_n george_n parry_n who_o have_v be_v high_a sheriff_n of_o hereford-shire_n in_o the_o second_o year_n of_o the_o say_a queen_n a_o speech_n make_v in_o the_o upper_a house_n of_o parliament_n against_o the_o supremacy_n to_o be_v in_o her_o majesty_n by_o nicholas_n heath_n lord_n chancellor_n of_o england_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n above_o 100_o year_n since_o in_o the_o original_a copy_n it_o be_v style_v a_o tale_n tell_v in_o parliament_n for_o oath_n the_o land_n shall_v be_v clothe_v in_o mourn_v my_o lord_n with_o all_o humble_a submission_n of_o my_o whole_a discourse_n to_o your_o wisdom_n i_o purpose_v to_o speak_v to_o the_o body_n of_o this_o act_n touch_v the_o supremacy_n that_o so_o what_o this_o honourable_a assembly_n be_v now_o a_o do_v concern_v the_o pass_n of_o this_o act_n may_v thereby_o be_v better_o weigh_v and_o consider_v by_o your_o wisdom_n first_o when_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o this_o act_n of_o the_o supremacy_n we_o must_v forsake_v and_o fly_v from_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n it_o will_v be_v consider_v what_o matter_n lie_v therein_o and_o what_o matter_n of_o danger_n or_o inconvenience_n or_o else_o whether_o there_o be_v none_o at_o all_o second_o if_o the_o intent_n of_o this_o act_n be_v to_o grant_v or_o settle_v upon_o the_o queen_n majesty_n a_o supremacy_n it_o will_v be_v consider_v of_o your_o wisdom_n what_o this_o supremacy_n be_v and_o whether_o it_o do_v consist_v in_o spiritual_a government_n or_o temporal_a if_o in_o temporal_a what_o further_a authority_n can_v this_o house_n give_v she_o more_o than_o what_o she_o already_o have_v by_o right_a of_o inheritance_n and_o not_o by_o our_o gift_n but_o by_o the_o appointment_n of_o god_n be_v our_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o lady_n our_o king_n and_o queen_n our_o empress_n and_o emperor_n and_o if_o further_o than_o this_o we_o acknowledge_v she_o to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n we_o ough_o also_o to_o grant_v that_o the_o emperor_n or_o any_o other_o prince_n be_v catholic_n and_o their_o subject_n protestant_n be_v to_o be_v head_n of_o their_o church_n whereby_o we_o shall_v do_v a_o act_n as_o disagreeable_a to_o protestant_n as_o this_o seem_v to_o catholic_n if_o you_o say_v the_o supremacy_n consist_v in_o spiritual_a concernment_n then_o it_o will_v be_v consider_v what_o the_o spiritual_a government_n be_v and_o in_o what_o point_v it_o do_v chief_o consist_v which_o be_v first_o agree_v upon_o it_o will_v be_v further_o consider_v of_o your_o wisdom_n whether_o this_o house_n may_v grant_v it_o to_o her_o highness_n or_o not_o and_o whether_o her_o highness_n be_v a_o apt_a person_n to_o receive_v the_o same_o so_o by_o through_o examination_n of_o these_o part_n your_o honour_n shall_v proceed_v in_o this_o matter_n ground_o upon_o such_o sure_a knowledge_n as_o not_o to_o be_v deceive_v by_o ignorance_n now_o to_o the_o first_o point_n wherein_o i_o promise_v to_o examine_v what_o matter_n of_o weight_n danger_n or_o inconvenience_n may_v be_v incur_v by_o this_o our_o forsake_v and_o fly_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o there_o be_v no_o further_a matter_n therein_o than_o the_o withdraw_a our_o obedience_n from_o the_o pope_n person_n suppose_v that_o he_o have_v declare_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o very_a austere_n and_o severe_a father_n to_o we_o than_o the_o business_n be_v not_o of_o so_o great_a importance_n as_o indeed_o it_o be_v as_o will_v immediate_o here_o appear_v for_o by_o relinquish_a and_o forsake_v the_o church_n or_o see_v of_o rome_n we_o must_v forsake_v and_o fly_v from_o all_o general_n council_n second_o from_o all_o canonical_a and_o ecclesiastical_a law_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n three_o from_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o other_o christian_a prince_n four_o and_o last_o we_o must_v forsake_v and_o fly_v from_o the_o holy_a unity_n of_o christ_n church_n and_o so_o by_o leap_v out_o of_o peter_n ship_n we_o hazard_v ourselves_o to_o be_v overwhelm_v in_o the_o wave_n of_o schism_n of_o sect_n and_o division_n first_o touch_v the_o general_a council_n i_o shall_v name_v unto_o you_o these_o four_o the_o nicene_n council_n the_o constantinopolitan_a council_n the_o ephesine_n and_o the_o chalcedon_n all_o which_o be_v approve_v by_o all_o men._n of_o these_o same_o council_n saint_n gregory_n write_v in_o this_o wise_a sicut_fw-la enim_fw-la sancti_fw-la evangelii_n quatuor_fw-la libros_fw-la sic_fw-la haec_fw-la quatuor_fw-la concilia_fw-la nicenum_n constantinopolitanum_n ephesinum_n &_o chalcedonense_n suscipere_fw-la ac_fw-la venerari_fw-la i_o fareor_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o english_a i_o confess_v i_o do_v receive_v and_o reverence_v those_o four_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a constantinople_n etc._n etc._n even_o as_o i_o do_v the_o four_o holy_a evangelist_n at_o the_o nicene_n council_n the_o first_o of_o the_o four_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v there_o assemble_v do_v write_v there_o epistle_n to_o sylvester_n than_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o their_o decree_n then_o make_v may_v be_v confirm_v by_o his_o authority_n at_o the_o council_n keep_v at_o constantinople_n all_o the_o bishop_n there_o be_v obedient_a to_o damasus_n than_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o as_o chief_a in_o the_o council_n give_v sentence_n against_o the_o heretic_n macedonius_n sabellius_n and_o eunomius_n which_o eunomius_n be_v both_o a_o arrian_n and_o the_o first_o author_n of_o that_o heresy_n that_o only_a faith_n do_v justify_v and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v lament_v that_o we_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o this_o realm_n be_v much_o more_o incline_v to_o raise_v up_o the_o error_n and_o sect_n of_o ancient_a condemn_a heretic_n than_o to_o follow_v the_o true_a approve_a doctrine_n of_o the_o most_o catholic_n and_o learned_a father_n of_o christ_n his_o church_n at_o the_o ephesine_n council_n nestorius_n the_o heretic_n be_v condemn_v by_o celestine_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v chief_a judge_n there_o at_o the_o chalcedon_n council_n all_o the_o bishop_n there_o assemble_v do_v write_v their_o humble_a submission_n unto_o leo_n than_o bishop_n of_o rome_n wherein_o they_o do_v acknowledge_v he_o there_o to_o be_v their_o chief_a head_n six_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o bishop_n of_o they_o therefore_o to_o deny_v the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o its_o authority_n be_v to_o contemn_v and_o set_v at_o nought_o the_o authority_n and_o decree_n of_o those_o noble_a council_n second_o we_o must_v forsake_v and_o fly_v from_o all_o canonical_a and_o ecclesiastical_a law_n of_o christ_n his_o church_n whereunto_o we_o have_v already_o profess_v our_o
obedience_n at_o the_o font_n say_v credo_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la that_o be_v i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n which_o article_n contain_v that_o we_o must_v receive_v the_o doctrine_n and_o sacrament_n of_o the_o same_o church_n obey_v her_o law_n and_o live_v according_a to_o the_o same_o which_o law_n do_v depend_v whole_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o like_v as_o it_o be_v here_o open_o profess_v by_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o realm_n that_o the_o law_n agree_v upon_o in_o the_o high_a and_o low_a house_n of_o this_o honourable_a parliament_n be_v of_o small_a or_o none_o effect_n before_o the_o royal_a assent_n of_o the_o king_n or_o prince_n be_v give_v thereunto_o even_o so_o ecclesiastical_a law_n make_v can_v bind_v the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n without_o the_o royal_a assent_n and_o confirmation_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a three_o we_o must_v forsake_v and_o fly_v from_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o other_o christian_a prince_n whether_o they_o be_v protestant_n or_o catholic_n christian_n when_o none_o of_o they_o do_v agree_v with_o these_o our_o do_n king_n henry_n the_o eight_o be_v the_o first_o that_o ever_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o title_n of_o supremacy_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v of_o late_a here_o in_o this_o house_n say_v by_o a_o nobleman_n that_o the_o title_n of_o supremacy_n be_v of_o right_n due_a to_o a_o king_n for_o that_o he_o be_v a_o king_n than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o herod_n be_v a_o king_n shall_v be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o nero_n the_o emperor_n supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n at_o rome_n they_o be_v both_o infidel_n and_o therefore_o no_o member_n of_o christ_n his_o church_n and_o if_o our_o saviour_n christ_n at_o his_o departure_n from_o this_o world_n shall_v have_v leave_v the_o spiritual_a government_n of_o his_o church_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o emperor_n and_o king_n and_o not_o to_o have_v commit_v the_o same_o to_o his_o apostle_n how_o negligent_o then_o shall_v he_o have_v leave_v his_o church_n it_o shall_v appear_v right_a well_o by_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o the_o emperor_n constantinus_n magnus_n be_v the_o first_o christian_n emperor_n and_o be_v baptise_a by_o sylvester_n bishop_n of_o rome_n about_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n jesus_n if_o by_o your_o proposition_n constantine_n the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n be_v the_o first_o head_n and_o spiritual_a governor_n of_o christ_n his_o church_n throughout_o his_o empire_n than_o it_o follow_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n for_o the_o space_n of_o three_o hundred_o year_n unto_o the_o come_n of_o this_o constantine_n leave_v his_o church_n which_o he_o have_v so_o dear_o buy_v by_o effusion_n of_o his_o most_o precious_a blood_n without_o any_o head_n at_o all_o but_o how_o untrue_a the_o say_n of_o this_o nobleman_n be_v it_o shall_v further_o appear_v by_o example_n of_o ozia_n and_o also_o of_o king_n david_n for_o king_n ozia_n do_v take_v the_o censor_n to_o do_v incense_n to_o the_o altar_n of_o god_n the_o priest_n azarias_n do_v resist_v he_o and_o expel_v he_o out_o of_o the_o temple_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o non_fw-fr est_fw-fr officii_fw-la tui_fw-la ozia_fw-la ut_fw-la adoleas_fw-la incensum_fw-la domino_fw-la sed_fw-la est_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la &_o filiorum_fw-la aaron_n ad_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la enim_fw-la officium_fw-la consecrati_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v not_o thy_o office_n ozia_n to_o offer_v incense_n to_o the_o altar_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v the_o priest_n office_n and_o the_o son_n of_o aaron_n for_o they_o be_v consecrate_a and_o anoint_v to_o that_o office_n now_o i_o shall_v most_o humble_o demand_v this_o question_n when_o the_o priest_n azarias_n say_v to_o the_o king_n non_fw-la est_fw-la officii_fw-la tui_fw-la whether_o he_o say_v truth_n or_o not_o if_o you_o answer_v that_o he_o speak_v the_o truth_n than_o the_o king_n be_v not_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n if_o you_o shall_v say_v no_o why_o do_v god_n plague_v the_o king_n with_o leprosy_n and_o not_o the_o priest_n the_o priest_n azarias_n in_o resist_v the_o king_n and_o thrust_v he_o out_o of_o the_o temple_n in_o so_o do_v do_v the_o priest_n play_v the_o faithful_a part_n of_o a_o subject_a or_o no_o if_o you_o answer_v no_o why_o then_o do_v god_n spare_v the_o priest_n and_o not_o spare_v the_o king_n if_o you_o answer_v yea_o than_o it_o be_v most_o manifest_a ozia_n in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o king_n can_v not_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o example_n of_o king_n david_n in_o bring_v home_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n from_o the_o country_n of_o the_o philistian_o to_o the_o city_n of_o david_n what_o supremacy_n or_o government_n of_o god_n ark_n do_v king_n david_n there_o take_v upon_o he_o do_v he_o place_v himself_o among_o the_o priest_n or_o take_v upon_o he_o any_o spiritual_a function_n unto_o they_o appertain_v do_v he_o approach_v near_o unto_o the_o ark_n or_o yet_o presume_v to_o touch_v the_o same_o no_o doubtless_o for_o he_o have_v see_v before_o ozia_n strike_v to_o death_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n for_o the_o like_a arrogance_n and_o presumption_n and_o therefore_o king_n david_n do_v go_v before_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n with_o his_o harp_n make_v melody_n and_o place_v himself_o among_o the_o minstrel_n and_o humble_o do_v abase_v himself_o be_v a_o king_n as_o to_o dance_v and_o leap_v before_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n like_v as_o his_o other_o subject_n do_v insomuch_o as_o his_o queen_n michol_n king_n saul_n daughter_n behold_v and_o see_v this_o great_a humility_n of_o king_n david_n do_v disdain_v thereat_o whereunto_o king_n david_n make_v answer_n say_v ludam_fw-la &_o vilior_fw-la fiam_fw-la plùs_fw-la quam_fw-la factus_fw-la sum_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v i_o will_v dance_v and_o abase_v myself_o more_o than_o yet_o i_o have_v do_v and_o abject_v myself_o in_o my_o own_o eye_n i_o shall_v appear_v more_o glorious_a with_o those_o handmaid_n that_o you_o talk_v of_o i_o will_v play_v here_o before_o my_o lord_n which_o have_v choose_v i_o rather_o than_o thy_o father_n house_n and_o whereas_o queen_n michol_n be_v therefore_o plague_v at_o god_n hand_n with_o perpetual_a sterility_n and_o barrenness_n king_n david_n receive_v great_a praise_n for_o his_o humility_n now_o may_v it_o please_v your_o honour_n to_o consider_v which_o of_o both_o these_o king_n example_n shall_v be_v most_o convenient_a for_o your_o wisdom_n to_o make_v the_o queen_n majesty_n to_o follow_v whether_o the_o example_n of_o proud_a ozia_n move_v she_o by_o your_o persuasion_n and_o council_n to_o take_v upon_o her_o spiritual_a government_n and_o thereby_o expose_v her_o soul_n to_o be_v plague_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n as_o king_n ozia_n be_v or_o else_o to_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o good_a king_n david_n which_o in_o refusal_n of_o all_o spiritual_a government_n about_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n do_v humble_v himself_o as_o i_o have_v declare_v unto_o you_o whereunto_o our_o sovereign_a lady_n the_o queen_n highness_n of_o her_o own_o nature_n be_v well_o incline_v we_o may_v assure_v ourselves_o to_o have_v of_o she_o as_o humble_v as_o virtuous_a and_o as_o godly_a a_o mistress_n to_o reign_v over_o we_o as_o ever_o have_v english_a people_n here_o in_o this_o realm_n if_o that_o her_o highness_n be_v not_o by_o your_o flattery_n and_o dissimulation_n seduce_v and_o beguile_v four_o and_o last_o we_o must_v forsake_v and_o fly_v from_o the_o holy_a unity_n of_o christ's-church_n see_v that_o st._n cyprian_n that_o holy_a martyr_n and_o great_a clerk_n do_v say_v that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n do_v depend_v upon_o peter_n authority_n and_o his_o successor_n therefore_o by_o leap_v out_o of_o peter_n ship_n we_o must_v be_v overwhelm_v with_o the_o wave_n of_o schism_n of_o sect_n and_o division_n because_o the_o same_o holy_a martyr_n in_o his_o three_o epistle_n to_o cornelius_n testify_v that_o all_o heresy_n sect_n and_o schism_n do_v spring_n only_o from_o hence_o that_o man_n will_v not_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o head-bishop_n of_o god_n and_o how_o true_a this_o say_n of_o st._n cyprian_n be_v we_o may_v see_v it_o most_o apparent_a to_o all_o man_n that_o list_v to_o see_v both_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o german_n and_o by_o we_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o this_o realm_n of_o england_n and_o by_o this_o our_o forsake_v and_o fly_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n this_o inconveniency_n among_o many_o must_v consequent_o follow_v that_o either_o we_o must_v grant_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n or_o else_o a_o malignant_a church_n if_o you_o
answer_v that_o it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n of_o god_n where_o jesus_n christ_n be_v true_o teach_v and_o his_o sacrament_n right_o administer_v how_o can_v we_o disburden_v ourselves_o of_o our_o forsake_v and_o fly_v from_o that_o church_n which_o we_o do_v confess_v and_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v of_o god_n when_o with_o that_o church_n which_o be_v of_o god_n we_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o and_o not_o to_o admit_v of_o any_o separation_n if_o you_o answer_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o of_o god_n but_o a_o malignant_a church_n than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o we_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o this_o realm_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o receive_v any_o benefit_n of_o christ_n see_v we_o have_v receive_v no_o gospel_n or_o other_o doctrine_n nor_o no_o other_o sacrament_n but_o what_o be_v send_v unto_o we_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n first_o in_o king_n lucius_z his_o day_n at_o who_o humble_a epistle_n the_o holy_a martyr_n elutherius_n than_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v send_v into_o this_o realm_n two_o holy_a monk_n fugatius_n and_o damianus_n by_o who_o doctrine_n and_o preach_v we_o be_v first_o bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n chrr_v of_o his_o holy_a gospel_n and_o his_o most_o holy_a sacrament_n then_o secu●…y_a 〈◊〉_d st._n gregory_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v sen●…_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d realm_n two_o other_o holy_a monk_n st._n austin_n 〈◊〉_d the_o apostle_n of_o england_n and_o milletus_n to_o receive_v the_o very_a self_n same_o faith_n that_o have_v be_v before_o plant_v here_o in_o this_o realm_n in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n lucius_n three_o and_o last_o of_o all_o paulus_n tertius_fw-la be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v send_v hither_o the_o lord_n cardinal_n pool_n his_o grace_n by_o birth_n a_o nobleman_n of_o this_o land_n his_o legate_n to_o restore_v we_o unto_o the_o same_o faith_n which_o the_o martyr_n st._n eleutherius_fw-la and_o st._n gregory_n have_v plant_v here_o many_o year_n before_o if_o therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o of_o god_n but_o a_o false_a and_o malignant_a church_n then_o have_v we_o be_v deceive_v all_o this_o while_n see_v the_o gospel_n the_o doctrine_n faith_n and_o sacrament_n must_v be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n as_o that_o church_n be_v from_o whence_o it_o and_o they_o come_v and_o therefore_o in_o relinquish_a and_o forsake_v that_o church_n the_o inhabitant_n of_o this_o realm_n shall_v be_v force_v to_o seek_v further_o for_o another_o gospel_n of_o christ_n other_o doctrine_n other_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n than_o we_o have_v hitherto_o receive_v which_o will_v breed_v such_o a_o schism_n and_o error_n in_o faith_n as_o be_v never_o in_o any_o christian_a realm_n and_o therefore_o of_o your_o wisdom_n worthy_a of_o consideration_n and_o mature_o to_o be_v ponder_v and_o be_v provide_v for_o before_o you_o pass_v this_o act_n of_o supremacy_n thus_o much_o touch_v the_o first_o chief_a point_n now_o to_o the_o second_o deliberation_n wherein_o i_o promise_v to_o move_v your_o honour_n to_o consider_v what_o this_o supremacy_n be_v which_o we_o go_v about_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o act_n to_o give_v unto_o the_o queen_n and_o wherein_o it_o do_v consist_v whether_o in_o spiritual_a government_n or_o temporal_a but_o if_o spiritual_a as_o these_o word_n in_o the_o act_n do_v import_n supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n immediate_o and_o next_o unto_o god_n then_o it_o will_v be_v consider_v in_o what_o point_v this_o spiritual_a government_n do_v consist_v and_o the_o point_n be_v well_o know_v it_o will_v be_v consider_v whether_o this_o house_n have_v authority_n to_o grant_v they_o and_o her_o highness_n ability_n to_o receive_v they_o and_o as_o concern_v the_o point_n wherein_o spiritual_a government_n do_v consist_v i_o have_v in_o read_v the_o gospel_n and_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o divinity_n thereupon_o as_o to_o my_o vocation_n belong_v observe_v these_o four_o as_o chief_a among_o many_o other_o whereof_o the_o first_o be_v the_o power_n to_o loose_v and_o bind_v sin_n when_o our_o saviour_n in_o ordain_v peter_n to_o be_v chief_a and_o head-governor_n of_o his_o church_n say_v unto_o he_o tibi_fw-la dabo_fw-la clave_n regni_fw-la coelorum_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n now_o it_o will_v be_v consider_v by_o your_o wisdom_n whewhether_o you_o have_v sufficient_a authority_n to_o grant_v unto_o her_o majesty_n this_o first_o point_n of_o spiritual_a government_n and_o to_o say_v unto_o she_o tibi_fw-la dabimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o thou_o will_v we_o give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n if_o you_o say_v yea_o then_o do_v we_o require_v the_o sight_n of_o warrant_n and_o commission_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o god_n word_n and_o if_o you_o say_v no_o than_o you_o may_v be_v well_o assure_v and_o persuade_v yourselves_o that_o you_o have_v not_o sufficient_a authority_n to_o make_v her_o highness_n supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n here_o in_o this_o realm_n the_o second_o point_n of_o spiritual_a government_n be_v gather_v out_o of_o these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n speak_v to_o st._n peter_n in_o the_o 20_o chapter_n of_o st._n john_n gospel_n pasce_fw-la &_o pasce_fw-la &_o pasce_fw-la that_o be_v feed_v my_o lamb_n feed_v my_o lamb_n feed_v my_o sheep_n now_o whether_o your_o honour_n have_v authority_n by_o this_o court_n of_o parliament_n to_o say_v unto_o our_o sovereign_a lady_n pasce_fw-la &_o pasce_fw-la &_o pasce_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v to_o say_v feed_v you_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n you_o must_v show_v your_o warrant_n and_o commission_n for_o it_o and_o further_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o her_o majesty_n be_v a_o woman_n by_o birth_n and_o nature_n be_v not_o qualify_v by_o god_n word_n to_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n appear_v most_o plain_o by_o st._n paul_n in_o this_o wise_a taceant_fw-la mulieres_fw-la in_o ecclesiis_fw-la sicut_fw-la &_o lex_fw-la dicit_fw-la ler_a woman_n be_v silent_a in_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o to_o speak_v but_o to_o be_v in_o subjection_n as_o the_o law_n say_v and_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o place_n turpe_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la mulieres_fw-la loqui_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la that_o be_v for_o that_o it_o be_v not_o seemly_a for_o a_o woman_n to_o speak_v in_o the_o church_n and_o in_o his_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n dominari_fw-la in_o virum_fw-la sed_fw-la esse_fw-la silentes_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v i_o allow_v not_o that_o a_o woman_n be_v a_o teacher_n or_o to_o be_v above_o her_o husband_n but_o to_o keep_v herself_o in_o silence_n therefore_o it_o appear_v likewise_o as_o your_o honour_n have_v not_o authority_n to_o give_v her_o highness_n this_o second_o point_n of_o spiritual_a government_n to_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n so_o by_o st._n paul_n doctrine_n her_o highness_n may_v not_o intermeddle_v herself_o with_o the_o same_o and_o therefore_o she_o can_v be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n here_o in_o england_n the_o three_o chief_a point_n of_o spiritual_a government_n be_v gather_v out_o of_o those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n speak_v to_o st._n peter_n in_o the_o 22th_o chapter_n of_o st._n luke_n gospel_n ego_fw-la rogavi_fw-la pro_fw-la te_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la deficiat_fw-la fides_fw-la tua_fw-la &_o tu_fw-la aliquando_fw-la conversus_fw-la confirma_fw-la fratres_fw-la tuos_fw-la that_o be_v i_o pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v and_o thou_o be_v convert_v confirm_v thy_o brethren_n and_o ratify_v they_o in_o wholesome_a doctrine_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v the_o holy_a instrument_n of_o god_n so_o institute_v and_o ordain_v for_o our_o sanctification_n that_o without_o they_o his_o grace_n be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v but_o to_o preach_v or_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n a_o woman_n may_v not_o be_v admit_v to_o do_v neither_o may_v she_o be_v supreme_a of_o christ_n church_n the_o four_o and_o last_o chief_a point_n of_o spiritual_a government_n which_o i_o promise_v to_o note_n unto_o you_o do_v consist_v in_o the_o excommunication_n and_o spiritual_a punishment_n of_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v approve_v themselves_o not_o to_o be_v the_o obedient_a child_n of_o christ_n church_n of_o which_o authority_n our_o saviour_n christ_n speak_v in_o st._n matthew_n gospel_n in_o the_o 18_o chapter_n say_v if_o your_o brother_n offend_v will_v not_o hear_v your_o charitable_a admonition_n whether_o secret_o at_o first_o or_o yet_o before_o one_o or_o two_o witness_n than_o we_o must_v complain_v of_o he_o to_o the_o church_n and_o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v take_v as_o a_o heathen_a or_o publican_n so_o the_o apostle_n do_v excommunicate_v the_o
council_n of_o the_o former_a sentence_n against_o it_o upon_o this_o revive_a disturbance_n of_o the_o church_n another_o council_n five_o year_n after_o be_v assemble_v at_o tours_n anno_fw-la 1055._o not_o far_o distant_a from_o angiers_n where_o he_o be_v archdeacon_n here_o himself_o with_o other_o of_o his_o party_n where_o present_a his_o cause_n plead_v his_o demonstration_n consider_v and_o after_o all_o his_o opinion_n again_o condemn_v himself_o also_o recant_v it_o the_o council_n dismiss_v he_o find_v yet_o other_o new_a reason_n and_o a_o great_a strength_n in_o his_o former_a and_o fall_v again_o to_o the_o abet_v maintain_v and_o spread_v abroad_o his_o old_a doctrine_n a_o four_o council_n upon_o these_o new_a trouble_n of_o the_o church_n anno_fw-la 1059._o four_o year_n after_o the_o last_o be_v call_v at_o rome_n where_o himself_o also_o be_v present_a some_o say_v long_a disputation_n there_o have_v his_o new_a plea_n for_o it_o be_v find_v too_o light_a and_o reject_v and_o his_o opinion_n oppose_v substantial_a conversion_n again_o condemn_v both_o by_o himself_o and_o council_n consist_v of_o a_o hundred_o and_o three_o bishop_n the_o three_o time_n this_o man_n revolt_v and_o publish_v a_o write_n answer_v by_o lanfranck_n afterward_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n wherein_o he_o complain_v that_o some_o particular_a enemy_n of_o his_o sway_v the_o former_a council_n and_o have_v make_v he_o to_o swear_v contradiction_n these_o new_a imputation_n occasion_v a_o five_o council_n to_o be_v call_v at_o rome_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1078._o in_o which_o be_v new_a dispute_n his_o last_o cavil_n censure_v and_o the_o article_n of_o a_o substantial_a conversion_n further_o vindicate_v and_o his_o error_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v again_o condemn_v by_o this_o council_n and_o last_o condemn_v by_o himself_o such_o be_v the_o sentence_n of_o five_o general_a council_n of_o the_o west_n and_o the_o same_o argument_n then_o refute_v yet_o be_v still_o urge_v as_o will_v appear_v by_o the_o writer_n of_o those_o time_n lanfranck_n guitmundus_n algerus_n to_o any_o one_o that_o please_v to_o peruse_v they_o the_o same_o authority_n out_o of_o the_o father_n then_o press_v as_o be_v still_o produce_v a_o new_a by_o the_o reform_a and_o with_o the_o same_o answer_v repel_v all_o these_o council_n if_o some_o of_o they_o in_o the_o member_n thereof_o less_o numerous_a yet_o universal_o accept_v by_o all_o the_o western_a church_n where_o this_o controversy_n be_v only_o agitate_a not_o one_o single_a bishop_n thereof_o that_o be_v know_v dissent_v or_o side_v with_o the_o berengarian_o look_v we_o for_o more_o satisfaction_n yet_o when_o the_o fervour_n of_o party_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v much_o allay_v and_o the_o church_n have_v have_v sufficient_a leisure_n to_o consider_v and_o digest_v the_o former_a conciliary_a decree_n above_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o last_o of_o the_o council_n forementioned_a the_o great_a lateran_n council_n be_v assemble_v under_o innocent_a the_o three_o in_o which_o be_v present_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o jerusalem_n in_o person_n and_o the_o substitute_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o of_o the_o alexandrian_a patriarch_n lie_v under_o the_o saracen_n yoke_n germanus_n his_o deacon_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o some_o of_o these_o patriarch_n be_v then_o latin_n or_o belong_v to_o the_o latin_a or_o western_a church_n because_o both_o constantinople_n and_o jerusalem_n be_v hold_v in_o possession_n the_o one_o for_o near_o 60_o the_o other_o for_o near_o 100_o year_n by_o the_o latin_n latin_a patriarch_n be_v then_o elect_v as_o sometime_o greek_o also_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o emperor_n have_v be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o yet_o they_o be_v the_o lawful_a and_o the_o only_a patriarch_n of_o those_o see_v at_o that_o time_n and_o present_v there_o be_v beside_o these_o a_o considerable_a number_n of_o other_o eastern_a bishop_n the_o whole_a council_n consist_v of_o four_o hundred_o and_o twelve_o bishop_n and_o seventy_o archbishop_n now_o this_o council_n again_o instead_o of_o reverse_v declare_v for_o a_o substantial_a conversion_n where_o also_o first_o that_o be_v in_o a_o council_n be_v use_v the_o name_n of_o transubstantiation_n two_o hundred_o year_n after_o this_o again_z the_o council_n at_o florence_n declare_v likewise_o for_o the_o same_o in_o the_o article_n of_o instruction_n for_o the_o jacobin_n and_o armenian_n in_o these_o word_n by_o force_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v convert_v or_o change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o substance_n of_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n now_o if_o the_o decree_n of_o so_o many_o council_n so_o often_o weigh_v the_o adversary_n reason_n and_o evidence_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o settle_v such_o a_o point_n what_o can_v hereafter_o be_v sufficient_a or_o how_o can_v we_o ever_o hope_v that_o any_o controversy_n shall_v be_v final_o determine_v or_o end_v by_o any_o future_a council_n can_v there_o be_v any_o ground_n here_o to_o question_v the_o integrity_n or_o lawful_a proceed_n of_o so_o many_o council_n at_o such_o a_o distance_n from_o one_o another_o all_o concure_n in_o the_o same_o judgement_n for_o a_o real_a presence_n and_o a_o substantial_a conversion_n or_o can_v there_o be_v any_o new_a light_n in_o this_o point_n since_o there_o be_v no_o new_a revelation_n attainable_a in_o these_o present_a time_n which_o those_o be_v never_o capable_a of_o or_o if_o there_o can_v be_v not_o much_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o present_a clergy_n and_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n of_o christianity_n still_o sway_v on_o the_o same_o side_n against_o any_o present_a evidence_n pretend_v how_o then_o can_v the_o reform_a revive_v the_o former_a argument_n of_o bertram_n scotus_n erigena_n berengarius_fw-la etc._n etc._n still_o trouble_v the_o church_n again_o with_o urge_v the_o same_o argument_n after_o the_o judgement_n of_o so_o many_o council_n already_o pass_v upon_o they_o can_v any_o desire_v a_o fair_a judicature_n by_o council_n in_o any_o matter_n than_o there_o have_v be_v already_o in_o this_o and_o be_v there_o any_o reason_n that_o protestant_n shall_v refer_v themselves_o in_o this_o point_n as_o they_o do_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o new_a council_n if_o all_o the_o council_n successive_o err_v in_o this_o point_n so_o manifest_o as_o that_o they_o can_v not_o lawful_o oblige_v their_o subject_n to_o obedience_n the_o next_o and_o the_o next_o to_o that_o of_o such_o council_n as_o ever_o we_o can_v hope_v for_o may_v err_v so_o too_o and_o the_o same_o obedience_n be_v deny_v to_o they_o whilst_o one_o pretend_v evidence_n or_o demonstration_n quell_v another_o new_a one_o start_v up_o and_o demand_v satisfaction_n but_o if_o these_o council_n be_v invalid_a or_o not_o sufficient_a for_o the_o establish_n the_o belief_n of_o a_o substantial_a conversion_n let_v we_o see_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o reformation_n here_o to_o repeal_v their_o act_n and_o to_o establish_v the_o contrary_a to_o they_o after_o all_o these_o council_n forenamed_a and_o that_o of_o trent_n add_v to_o they_o anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1562._o a_o synod_n be_v call_v at_o london_n of_o two_o province_n only_o of_o the_o west_n consist_v of_o about_o twenty_o four_o bishop_n and_o two_o metropolitan_n and_o by_o these_o against_o all_o the_o former_a council_n abovesaid_a it_o be_v decree_v articulo_fw-la 28._o that_o the_o change_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o scripture_n and_o overthrow_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n thus_o that_o article_n now_o in_o obedience_n to_o this_o their_o decree_n they_o tie_v their_o subject_n to_o subscribe_v that_o they_o acknowledge_v it_o that_o be_v believe_v it_o to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n see_v their_o synod_n 1603._o can._n 63._o this_o be_v a_o obedience_n which_o themselves_o though_o subject_n do_v deny_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o all_o those_o precedent_a council_n wherein_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o metropolitan_o of_o the_o western_a world_n than_o concur_v and_o among_o the_o rest_n those_o of_o these_o two_o province_n also_o and_o yet_o do_v their_o synod_n require_v it_o here_o let_v a_o sober_a christian_a judge_n if_o assent_n be_v hold_v due_a to_o this_o london-synod_n be_v it_o not_o to_o those_o other_o much_o rather_o to_o those_o other_o i_o say_v incomparable_o more_o numerous_a accept_v by_o the_o west_n for_o many_o age_n and_o adhere_v to_o still_o by_o the_o great_a part_n thereof_o have_v before_o they_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o traditive_a exposition_n of_o they_o weigh_v the_o argument_n that_o be_v still_o on_o foot_n meet_v so_o often_o and_o conclude_v still_o in_o the_o same_o judgement_n but_o if_o those_o other_o council_n be_v
succession_n to_o the_o crown_n in_o this_o last_o will_n that_o contrary_a to_o all_o justice_n he_o total_o exclude_v the_o whole_a scottish-line_n descend_v from_o the_o lady_n margaret_n his_o elder_a sister_n from_o all_o hope_n of_o have_v their_o turn_n in_o it_o his_o infirmity_n and_o the_o weakness_n it_o bring_v upon_o he_o confine_v he_o to_o his_o bed_n he_o have_v a_o great_a desire_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n and_o be_v persuade_v to_o receive_v it_o in_o the_o easy_a posture_n sit_v or_o raise_v up_o in_o his_o bed_n he_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n yield_v unto_o it_o but_o cause_v himself_o to_o be_v take_v up_o and_o place_v in_o his_o chair_n in_o which_o he_o hear_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o mass_n till_o the_o consecration_n and_o then_o receive_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n on_o his_o knee_n as_o at_o other_o time_n say_v withal_o as_o saunders_n relate_v the_o story_n that_o if_o he_o do_v not_o only_o cast_v himself_o upon_o the_o ground_n but_o even_o under_o it_o also_o he_o can_v not_o give_v unto_o the_o sacrament_n the_o honour_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o it_o the_o instant_n of_o his_o death_n approach_v none_o of_o his_o servant_n though_o thereunto_o desire_v by_o his_o physician_n dare_v acquaint_v he_o with_o it_o till_o at_o last_o sir_n anthony_n denny_n undertake_v that_o ungrateful_a office_n which_o the_o king_n entertain_v with_o less_o impatience_n than_o be_v look_v for_o from_o he_o give_v order_n that_o archbishop_n cranmer_n shall_v be_v present_o send_v for_o but_o he_o be_v then_o at_o croyden_n it_o be_v so_o long_o before_o he_o come_v that_o he_o find_v he_o speechless_a however_o apply_v himself_o to_o the_o king_n present_a condition_n and_o discourse_v to_o he_o on_o this_o point_n that_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v obtain_v only_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n he_o desire_v the_o king_n if_o he_o understand_v the_o effect_n of_o his_o word_n and_o believe_v the_o same_o that_o he_o will_v signify_v so_o much_o by_o some_o sign_n or_o other_o which_o the_o king_n do_v by_o wring_v he_o gentle_o by_o the_o hand_n and_o short_o after_o die_v there_o be_v a_o sharp_a but_o shrewd_a character_n of_o this_o king_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o never_o sparea_fw-mi woman_n in_o his_o lust_n nor_o man_n in_o his_o anger_n sir_n walter_n raleigh_n say_v of_o he_o that_o if_o all_o the_o pattern_n of_o a_o merciless_a prince_n have_v be_v lose_v in_o the_o world_n they_o may_v have_v be_v find_v in_o this_o king_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n i_o will_v here_o set_v down_o some_o passage_n out_o of_o his_o last_o will_n relate_v by_o dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 23._o by_o which_o it_o will_v appear_v how_o constant_a he_o be_v till_o his_o death_n in_o profess_v and_o maintain_v these_o follow_a point_n of_o catholic_n doctrine_n to_o wit_n the_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a the_o word_n of_o the_o will_v be_v these_o we_o most_o humble_o and_o hearty_o recommend_v our_o soul_n to_o god_n who_o in_o the_o person_n of_o his_o son_n redeem_v we_o with_o his_o most_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n and_o for_o our_o better_a remembrance_n thereof_o have_v leave_v here_o with_o we_o in_o his_o church_n militant_a the_o consecration_n and_o administration_n of_o his_o most_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n we_o also_o instant_o desire_v that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n with_o all_o the_o holy_a company_n of_o heaven_n may_v continual_o pray_v for_o we_o whilst_o we_o live_v in_o this_o world_n and_o at_o our_o pass_v out_o of_o it_o that_o we_o may_v the_o soon_o attain_v everlasting_a life_n we_o likewise_o further_o ordain_v that_o there_o be_v a_o convenient_a altar_n at_o windsor_n honourable_o prepare_v with_o all_o thing_n requisite_a and_o necessary_a for_o a_o daily_a mass_n there_o to_o be_v say_v perpetual_o while_o the_o world_n shall_v endure_v moreover_o he_o give_v order_n that_o all_o divine_a office_n accustom_v for_o the_o dead_a shall_v be_v daily_o celebrate_v for_o he_o and_o that_o at_o the_o removal_n of_o his_o body_n to_o windsor_n a_o thousand_o mark_n shall_v be_v distribute_v among_o the_o poor_a to_o pray_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o the_o good_a of_o his_o soul_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n a_o account_n of_o his_o wife_n of_o six_o wife_n this_o king_n have_v anne_n boleign_v his_o second_o wife_n be_v behead_v for_o incest_n with_o her_o own_o brother_n the_o three_o jane_n seymour_n be_v in_o childbirth_n and_o in_o danger_n of_o death_n have_v her_o belly_n rip_v up_o to_o preserve_v the_o child_n the_o four_o anne_n of_o cleve_n be_v cast_v off_o within_o two_o or_o three_o month_n the_o five_o catherine_n howard_n be_v behead_v for_o adultery_n concern_v his_o six_o wife_n thus_o write_v sir_n rich._n baker_n page_n 418._o the_o six_o catherine_n parr_n be_v a_o earnest_n protestant_n be_v accuse_v to_o the_o king_n to_o have_v heretical_a book_n in_o her_o closet_n and_o this_o be_v so_o aggravate_v against_o she_o that_o they_o prevail_v with_o the_o king_n to_o sign_n a_o warrant_n to_o commit_v she_o to_o the_o tower_n with_o a_o purpose_n to_o have_v burn_v she_o for_o heresy_n this_o warrant_n be_v commit_v to_o wriothsley_n lord_n chancellor_n and_o he_o by_o chance_n let_v it_o fall_v from_o he_o it_o be_v take_v up_o and_o carry_v to_o the_o queen_n who_o have_v read_v it_o go_v soon_o after_o to_o visit_v the_o king_n be_v come_v to_o the_o king_n he_o present_o fall_v into_o talk_n with_o she_o about_o some_o point_n of_o religion_n demand_v her_o resolution_n therein_o but_o she_o know_v that_o his_o nature_n be_v not_o to_o be_v cross_v special_o consider_v the_o case_n she_o be_v in_o make_v he_o answer_v that_o she_o be_v a_o woman_n accompany_v with_o many_o imperfection_n but_o his_o majesty_n be_v wise_a and_o judicious_a of_o who_o she_o must_v learn_v as_o of_o her_o lord_n and_o head_n not_o so_o by_o st._n mary_n say_v the_o king_n for_o you_o be_v a_o doctor_n kate_n to_o instruct_v we_o and_o not_o to_o be_v instruct_v by_o we_o as_o often_o we_o have_v see_v heretofore_o indeed_o sir_n say_v she_o if_o your_o majesty_n have_v so_o conceive_v i_o have_v be_v mistake_v for_o if_o heretofore_o i_o have_v hold_v talk_n with_o your_o majesty_n it_o have_v be_v to_o learn_v some_o point_n of_o your_o majesty_n whereof_o i_o stand_v in_o doubt_n and_o sometime_o that_o with_o my_o talk_n i_o may_v make_v you_o forget_v your_o present_a infirmity_n and_o be_v it_o so_o say_v king_n then_o we_o be_v friend_n but_o nevertheless_o soon_o after_o upon_o a_o day_n appoint_v by_o the_o king_n warrant_v for_o apprehend_v she_o the_o king_n be_v dispose_v to_o walk_v into_o the_o garden_n take_v the_o queen_n with_o he_o when_o all_o on_o the_o sudden_a the_o lord_n chancellor_n with_o forty_o of_o the_o guard_n come_v into_o the_o garden_n with_o a_o purpose_n to_o apprehend_v she_o who_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o king_n see_v he_o step_v to_o the_o chancellor_n and_o call_v he_o knave_n and_o fool_n bid_v he_o get_v he_o out_o of_o his_o presence_n the_o queen_n see_v the_o king_n so_o angry_a with_o he_o begin_v to_o entreat_v he_o to_o who_o the_o king_n say_v you_o little_o know_v what_o it_o be_v he_o come_v about_o of_o my_o word_n sweetheart_n he_o have_v be_v a_o very_a knave_n to_o thou_o thus_o the_o queen_n be_v preserve_v who_o else_o have_v taste_v of_o as_o bitter_a a_o cup_n as_o any_o of_o his_o former_a wife_n have_v do_v thus_o sir_n rich._n baker_n now_o we_o will_v give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o year_n when_o these_o change_n be_v make_v sir_n rich._n baker_n page_n 425._o in_o the_o eight_o year_n of_o this_o king_n reign_n luther_n begin_v to_o preach_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o bring_v in_o a_o reformation_n of_o religion_n for_o repress_v of_o who_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v call_v by_o pope_n paul_n the_o three_o at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o luther_n there_o arise_v also_o in_o the_o same_o country_n other_o reformer_n of_o religion_n as_o zuinglius_fw-la oecolampadius_n melancthon_n etc._n etc._n wh●…_n differ_v from_o luther_n in_o some_o point_n make_v the_o difference_n which_o be_v at_o this_o day_n of_o lutheran_n and_o protestant_n so_o call_v at_o first_o at_o augsburg_n for_o make_v a_o protestation_n in_o defence_n of_o their_o doctrine_n in_o his_o two_o and_o twenty_o year_n a_o proclamation_n be_v set_v forth_o that_o no_o person_n shall_v purchase_v any_o thing_n from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o beginning_n of_o his_o desert_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o three_o and_o twenty_o year_n the_o clergy_n
submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o king_n for_o be_v find_v guilty_a of_o a_o praemunire_n be_v the_o first_o that_o call_v he_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o with_o this_o restriction_n so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v according_a unto_o god_n word_n and_o not_o otherwise_o in_o his_o four_o and_o twenty_o year_n a_o act_n of_o parliament_n be_v make_v that_o no_o person_n shall_v appeal_v for_o any_o cause_n out_o of_o this_o realm_n to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o twenty_o six_o year_n a_o act_n be_v make_v which_o authorize_v the_o king_n to_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v abolish_v and_o then_o also_o be_v give_v to_o the_o king_n the_o first_o fruit_n and_o ten_o of_o all_o spiritual_a live_n and_o this_o year_n be_v many_o put_v to_o death_n papist_n for_o deny_v the_o king_n supremacy_n protestant_n for_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o be_v it_o credible_a what_o number_n suffer_v death_n for_o these_o two_o cause_n in_o the_o last_o ten_o year_n of_o the_o king_n reign_n of_o who_o if_o we_o shall_v make_v particular_a mention_n it_o will_v reach_v a_o great_a way_n in_o the_o book_n of_o martyr_n in_o his_o eight_o and_o twenty_o year_n the_o lord_n cromwell_n be_v make_v vicar_n general_n under_o the_o king_n over_o the_o spirituality_n and_o at_o least_o four_o hundred_o monastery_n be_v suppress_v and_o all_o their_o land_n and_o good_n confer_v upon_o the_o king_n by_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n in_o his_o one_o and_o thirty_o year_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o the_o bishop_n the_o book_n of_o the_o six_o article_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o monastery_n be_v confer_v upon_o he_o last_o in_o his_o thirty_o five_o year_n all_o college_n chantry_n and_o hospital_n be_v give_v to_o he_o thus_o sir_n rich._n baker_n here_o you_o have_v have_v a_o short_a view_n of_o the_o beginning_n and_o sad_a effect_n of_o this_o prodigious_a change_n of_o religion_n begin_v by_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o a_o further_a prosecution_n of_o these_o historical_a collection_n concern_v a_o second_o change_n of_o religion_n make_v for_o politic_a end_n and_o of_o the_o occurrence_n concern_v it_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n edward_z the_o six_z a_o preamble_n this_o be_v a_o summary_n account_v of_o this_o king_n reign_n as_o to_o these_o matter_n of_o religion_n take_v out_o of_o the_o preface_n of_o dr._n heylyn_n history_n of_o reformation_n where_o after_o a_o brief_a narration_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eighth_n desert_v the_o pope_n he_o give_v this_o follow_a account_n of_o his_o son_n king_n edward_n the_o six_o the_o relation_n whereof_o begin_v thus_o next_o come_v his_o son_n edward_n the_o six_o upon_o the_o stage_n who_o name_n be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o serve_v turn_v withal_o and_o his_o authority_n abuse_v to_o his_o own_o undo_n in_o his_o first_o year_n the_o reformation_n be_v resolve_v on_o but_o on_o different_a end_n endeavour_v by_o some_o bishop_n and_o other_o of_o the_o low_a clergy_n and_o promote_v with_o the_o like_a zeal_n and_o industry_n but_o not_o with_o like_a integrity_n by_o some_o great_a man_n about_o the_o ●…rt_n who_o under_o colour_n of_o remove_v corruption_n out_o of_o the_o church_n have_v cast_v their_o eye_n upon_o the_o spoil_n of_o shrine_n and_o image_n though_o still_o preserve_v in_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o lutheran_n church_n and_o the_o improve_n their_o own_o fortune_n by_o the_o chantry_n land_n all_o which_o they_o most_o sacrilegious_o divide_v among_o themselves_o without_o admit_v the_o poor_a king_n to_o share_v with_o they_o though_o nothing_o but_o the_o fill_v his_o coffer_n by_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o increase_n of_o his_o revenue_n by_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o other_o be_v open_o pretend_v in_o the_o conduct_n of_o it_o but_o to_o speak_v no_o more_o of_o this_o the_o work_n chief_o intend_v be_v vigorous_o carry_v on_o by_o the_o king_n and_o his_o counsellor_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o doctrinal_n in_o the_o book_n of_o homily_n and_o by_o the_o practical_a part_n of_o christian_a piety_n and_o here_o the_o business_n may_v have_v rest_v if_o calvin_n pragmatical_a spirit_n have_v not_o interpose_v he_o first_o begin_v to_o quarrel_v at_o some_o passage_n in_o the_o liturgy_n and_o afterward_o never_o leave_v solicit_v the_o lord_n protector_n and_o practise_v by_o his_o agent_n on_o the_o court_n the_o country_n and_o the_o university_n till_o he_o have_v lay_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o the_o zuinglian_a faction_n who_o labour_v nothing_o more_o than_o innovation_n both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n to_o which_o they_o be_v encourage_v by_o nothing_o more_o than_o some_o improvident_a indulgence_n grant_v unto_o john_n alasco_n who_o bring_v with_o he_o a_o mix_a multitude_n of_o pole_n and_o german_n obtain_v the_o privilege_n of_o a_o church_n for_o himself_o and_o he_o distinct_a in_o government_n and_o form_n of_o worship_n from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n this_o much_o animate_v the_o zuinglian_a gospeler_n to_o practice_n first_o upon_o the_o church_n who_o be_v countenance_v if_o not_o head_v by_o the_o earl_n of_o warwick_n who_o then_o begin_v to_o undermine_v the_o lord_n protector_n first_o quarrel_v the_o episcopal_a habit_n and_o afterward_o enveigh_v against_o cap_n and_o surplice_n against_o gown_n and_o tippet_n but_o fall_v at_o last_o upon_o the_o altar_n which_o be_v leave_v stand_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o liturgy_n the_o touch_v upon_o this_o string_n make_v excellent_a music_n to_o most_o of_o the_o grandee_n of_o the_o court_n who_o have_v before_o cast_v many_o a_o envious_a eye_n on_o those_o costly_a hang_n that_o massy_a plate_n and_o other_o rich_a and_o precious_a thing_n which_o adorn_v those_o altar_n and_o what_o need_v all_o this_o waist_n say_v judas_n when_o one_o poor_a chalice_n only_o and_o perhaps_o not_o that_o may_v have_v serve_v the_o turn_n beside_o there_o be_v no_o small_a spoil_n to_o be_v make_v of_o cope_n in_o which_o the_o priest_n officiate_v at_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n some_o of_o they_o be_v make_v of_o cloth_n of_o tissue_n cloth_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n or_o embroider_a velvet_n the_o mean_a be_v make_v of_o silk_n or_o satin_n with_o some_o decent_a trim_n and_o may_v not_o these_o be_v handsome_o convert_v unto_o private_a use_n to_o serve_v as_o carpet_n to_o their_o table_n coverlet_n to_o their_o bed_n or_o cushion_n for_o their_o chair_n and_o window_n hereupon_o some_o rude_a people_n be_v encourage_v underhand_o to_o beat_v down_o some_o altar_n which_o make_v way_n for_o a_o order_n of_o the_o council-table_n to_o take_v down_o the_o rest_n and_o set_v up_o table_n in_o their_o place_n follow_v by_o a_o commission_n to_o be_v execute_v in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n for_o seize_v on_o the_o premise_n for_o the_o king_n use_n but_o as_o the_o grandee_n of_o the_o court_n intend_v to_o defraud_v the_o king_n of_o so_o great_a a_o booty_n and_o the_o commissioner_n to_o put_v a_o cheat_n upon_o the_o court-lord_n who_o employ_v they_o in_o it_o so_o they_o be_v both_o prevent_v in_o some_o place_n by_o the_o lord_n and_o gentry_n of_o the_o country_n who_o think_v the_o altar-clothe_n together_o with_o the_o cope_n and_o plate_n of_o their_o several_a church_n to_o be_v as_o necessary_a for_o themselves_o as_o for_o any_o other_o this_o change_n draw_v on_o the_o alteration_n of_o the_o former_a liturgy_n but_o almost_o as_o unpleasing_a to_o the_o zuinglian_a faction_n as_o the_o former_a be_v in_o which_o conjuncture_n of_o affair_n king_n edward_n the_o six_o died_z from_o the_o begin_n of_o who_o reign_n the_o reformation_n begin_v all_o that_o be_v do_v in_o order_n to_o it_o under_z king_n henry_n the_o eight_o seem_v but_o accidental_a only_o and_o by_o the_o by_o rather_o design_v on_o private_a end_n than_o out_o of_o any_o settle_a purpose_n of_o a_o reformation_n and_o therefore_o intermit_v and_o resume_v again_o as_o those_o end_n have_v variance_n but_o now_o the_o great_a work_n be_v carry_v on_o with_o a_o constant_a hand_n the_o clergy_n cooperate_a with_o the_o king_n and_o the_o council_n for_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o but_o scarce_o have_v they_o bring_v it_o to_o this_o pass_n when_o king_n edward_n die_v who_o death_n i_o can_v reckon_v for_o a_o infelicity_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o be_v ill_o principled_a in_o himsel_n and_o easy_o incline_v to_o embrace_v such_o counsel_n as_o be_v offer_v to_o he_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v but_o that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishopric_n before_o sufficient_o impoverish_v must_v have_v follow_v durham_n and_o the_o poor_a church_n be_v leave_v as_o destitute_a
and_o the_o french_a another_o and_o on_o the_o lord_n day_n so_o to_o divide_v the_o hour_n between_o they_o that_o the_o one_o may_v be_v no_o hindrance_n unto_o the_o other_o it_o have_v be_v also_o say_v that_o there_o be_v another_o condition_n impose_v upon_o they_o of_o be_v conform_v to_o the_o french_a in_o doctrine_n and_o ceremony_n which_o condition_n if_o it_o be_v impose_v and_o not_o seek_v by_o themselves_o must_v needs_o be_v very_o agreeable_a to_o the_o temper_n and_o complexion_n of_o their_o principal_a leader_n who_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o zuinglian_a gospeler_n at_o their_o go_v hence_o become_v the_o great_a promoter_n of_o the_o puritan_n faction_n at_o their_o come_n home_o the_o name_n of_o whittingham_n williams_n goodman_n wood_n and_o sutton_n who_o appear_v in_o the_o head_n of_o this_o congregation_n declare_v sufficient_o of_o what_o principle_n they_o be_v and_o how_o willing_a they_o will_v be_v to_o lay_v aside_o the_o face_n of_o a_o english_a church_n and_o frame_v themselves_o to_o any_o liturgy_n but_o their_o own_o the_o noise_n of_o this_o new_a church_n at_o frankfort_n occasion_v knox_n who_o after_o prove_v the_o great_a incendiary_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o church_n of_o scotland_n to_o leave_v his_o sanctuary_n in_o geneva_n in_o hope_n to_o make_v a_o better_a market_n for_o himself_o in_o that_o congregation_n these_o frankfort-schismaticks_a desire_n that_o all_o divine_a office_n may_v be_v execute_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n of_o geneva_n which_o knox_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n yield_v to_o think_v himself_o as_o able_a to_o make_v a_o rule_n for_o his_o own_o congregation_n as_o any_o calvin_n of_o they_o all_o infinite_a be_v the_o confusion_n which_o they_o have_v among_o themselves_o and_o from_o hence_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o puritan_n faction_n against_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n that_o of_o the_o presbyterian_o against_o the_o bishop_n or_o episcopal_a government_n and_o final_o that_o also_o of_o the_o independent_o against_o the_o super-intendency_a of_o pastor_n and_o elder_n but_o sorrow_n seldom_o go_v alone_o for_o their_o differ_v from_o the_o government_n form_n and_o worship_n establish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n draw_v on_o a_o alteration_n also_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n such_o of_o the_o english_a as_o have_v retire_v to_o geneva_n employ_v themselves_o in_o set_v out_o a_o new_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n in_o the_o english-tongue_n which_o afterward_o they_o publish_v with_o certain_a marginal_a note_n upon_o it_o very_a heterodox_n in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n some_o dangerous_a and_o seditious_a in_o reference_n to_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o some_o as_o scandalous_a in_o respect_n of_o episcopal_a government_n from_o this_o time_n the_o calvinian_a doctrine_n of_o predestination_n begin_v to_o be_v disperse_v in_o english_a pamphlet_n as_o the_o only_a necessary_a orthodox_n and_o save_a truth_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n concern_v these_o protestant_n but_o now_o leave_v these_o confusion_n the_o effect_n of_o schism_n we_o will_v here_o relate_v a_o princely_a work_n of_o piety_n do_v by_o the_o queen_n chap._n v._n of_o the_o queen_n resolution_n of_o restore_a church-land_n and_o of_o what_o she_o do_v actual_o restore_v before_o her_o death_n anno_fw-la reg._n mar._n 4._o dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 56._o before_o she_o undertake_v this_o work_n she_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o communicate_v her_o purpose_n unto_o some_o of_o the_o council_n and_o therefore_o call_v they_o to_o she_o she_o be_v say_v to_o have_v speak_v to_o they_o in_o these_o follow_a word_n we_o have_v will_v you_o to_o be_v call_v to_o we_o to_o the_o intent_n you_o may_v hear_v of_o i_o my_o conscience_n and_o the_o resolution_n of_o my_o mind_n concern_v the_o land_n and_o possession_n as_o well_o of_o monastery_n as_o of_o other_o church_n whatsoever_o be_v now_o in_o my_o possession_n first_o i_o do_v consider_v that_o the_o say_v land_n be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o church_n aforesaid_a in_o time_n of_o schism_n and_o that_o by_o unlawful_a mean_n such_o as_o be_v contrary_a both_o to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o church_n for_o which_o cause_n my_o conscience_n do_v not_o suffer_v i_o to_o detain_v they_o and_o therefore_o i_o here_o express_o refuse_v either_o to_o claim_v or_o retain_v those_o land_n for_o i_o but_o with_o all_o my_o heart_n free_o and_o willing_o without_o all_o paction_n or_o condition_n here_o and_o before_o god_n i_o do_v surrender_n and_o relinquish_v the_o say_a land_n and_o possession_n or_o inheritance_n whatsoever_o and_o renounce_v the_o same_o with_o this_o mind_n and_o purpose_n that_o order_n and_o disposition_n thereof_o may_v be_v take_v as_o shall_v seem_v best_a like_v to_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o legate_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o wealth_n of_o this_o our_o realm_n and_o albeit_o you_o may_v object_v to_o i_o again_o that_o the_o state_n of_o my_o kingdom_n the_o dignity_n thereof_o and_o my_o crown_n imperial_a can_v be_v honourable_o maintain_v and_o furnish_v without_o the_o possession_n aforesaid_a yet_o notwithstanding_o and_o so_o she_o have_v affirm_v before_o when_o she_o be_v bend_v upon_o the_o restitution_n of_o the_o ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n i_o set_v more_o by_o the_o salvation_n of_o my_o soul_n than_o by_o ten_o such_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o the_o say_a possession_n i_o utter_o refuse_v here_o to_o hold_v after_o that_o sort_n and_o title_n and_o give_v most_o hearty_a thanks_o to_o god_n who_o have_v give_v i_o a_o husband_n of_o the_o same_o mind_n who_o have_v no_o less_o good_a affection_n in_o this_o behalf_n than_o i_o myself_o wherefore_o i_o charge_v and_o command_n that_o my_o chancellor_n with_o who_o i_o have_v confer_v my_o mind_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o you_o four_o do_v ●…esort_n to_o morrow_n together_o to_o the_o legate_n signify_v to_o he_o the_o premise_n in_o my_o name_n and_o give_v your_o attendance_n upon_o i_o for_o the_o more_o full_a declaration_n of_o the_o state_n of_o my_o kingdom_n and_o of_o the_o aforesaid_a possession_n according_a as_o you_o yourselves_o do_v understand_v the_o matter_n and_o can_v inform_v he_o in_o the_o same_o upon_o this_o open_n of_o her_o mind_n the_o lord_n think_v it_o req●…isite_a to_o direct_v some_o course_n wherein_o she_o may_v satisfy_v her_o desire_n to_o her_o own_o great_a honour_n and_o yet_o not_o alienate_v too_o much_o at_o once_o of_o the_o public_a patrimony_n the_o abbey_n of_o westminster_n have_v be_v found_v for_o a_o convent_n of_o benedictin_a monk_n by_o king_n edward_n the_o confessor_n value_v at_o the_o suppression_n by_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o at_o the_o yearly_a sum_n of_o three_o thousand_o nine_o hundred_o seventy_o seven_o pound_n in_o good_a old_a rent_n anno_fw-la 1539._o at_o which_o time_n have_v take_v to_o himself_o the_o best_a and_o great_a part_n of_o the_o land_n thereof_o he_o found_v with_o the_o rest_n a_o collegiate_n church_n consist_v of_o a_o dean_n and_o secular_a canon_n but_o now_o the_o queen_n put_v into_o it_o a_o convent_n of_o benedictin_n consist_v of_o a_o abbot_n and_o fourteen_o monk_n which_o with_o their_o officer_n be_v as_o many_o as_o the_o land_n then_o leave_v upon_o it_o will_v well_o maintain_v a_o convent_n of_o observant_n be_v a_o reform_a order_n of_o franciscan_a friar_n have_v be_v found_v by_o king_n henry_n the_o seven_o near_o the_o manor_n of_o greenwich_n and_o be_v the_o first_o which_o feel_v the_o fury_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o by_o reason_n of_o some_o open_a opposition_n make_v by_o some_o of_o the_o friar_n in_o favour_n of_o queen_n catherine_n the_o mother_n of_o the_o queen_n now_o reign_v which_o move_v she_o in_o a_o pious_a gratitude_n to_o re-edify_a that_o ruin_a house_n and_o to_o restore_v as_o many_o as_o can_v be_v find_v of_o that_o order_n to_o their_o old_a habitation_n make_v up_o their_o corporation_n with_o some_o new_a observant_n to_o a_o competent_a number_n she_o gather_v together_o also_o a_o new_a convent_n of_o dominican_n or_o blackfriar_n for_o who_o she_o provide_v a_o house_n in_o smithfield_n in_o the_o city_n of_o london_n fit_v the_o same_o with_o all_o convenience_n both_o for_o the_o divine_a office_n as_o likewise_o for_o other_o necessary_a uses_n at_o zion_n near_o brentford_n there_o have_v be_v ancient_o a_o house_n of_o religious_a woman_n nun_n of_o the_o order_n of_o st._n bridget_n dissolve_v as_o be_v all_o the_o rest_n by_z king_n henry_n the_o eight_o such_o of_o these_o as_o remain_v alive_a with_o the_o addition_n of_o some_o other_o who_o be_v willing_a to_o embrace_v that_o course_n of_o life_n make_v up_o a_o competent_a number_n for_o a_o new_a plantation_n these_o she_o restore_v likewise_o to_o their_o
thereof_o some_o of_o the_o lutheran_n have_v give_v out_o on_o the_o former_a ground_n that_o the_o english_a have_v deserve_o suffer_v the_o great_a hardship_n both_o at_o home_n and_o abroad_o because_o they_o write_v and_o speak_v so_o irreverent_o of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n concern_v the_o lutheran_n detest_a a_o english_a protestant_n nothing_o occur_v more_o in_o this_o queen_n reign_n as_o to_o these_o matter_n of_o religion_n we_o will_v now_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o year_n when_o these_o change_n be_v make_v with_o a_o addition_n of_o some_o work_n of_o piety_n do_v by_o she_o and_o in_o her_o time_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o this_o queen_n reign_n all_o bishop_n that_o have_v be_v deprive_v in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o be_v restore_v to_o their_o bishopric_n and_o the_o new_a remove_v also_o this_o year_n on_o the_o twenty_o seven_o of_o august_n the_o service_n be_v sing_v in_o latin_a in_o st._n paul_n church_n the_o pope_n authority_n be_v likewise_o by_o act_n of_o parliament_n restore_v in_o england_n and_o the_o m●…ss_n command_v in_o all_o church_n to_o be_v use_v in_o her_o second_o year_n the_o realm_n be_v absolve_v and_o reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o first_o fruit_n and_o ten_o restore_v to_o the_o clergy_n in_o her_o three_o year_n eight_o hundred_o english_a protestant_n sorsook_v the_o kingdom_n who_o fall_v into_o great_a confusion_n among_o themselves_o be_v in_o other_o country_n in_o her_o four_o year_n monastery_n be_v be_v gun_n to_o be_v re-edify_v in_o her_o five_o year_n great_a endeavour_n be_v use_v by_o sectary_n to_o raise_v sedition_n by_o seditious_a book_n and_o unlawful_a meeting_n or_o conventicle_n in_o her_o six_o year_n she_o build_v public_a school_n in_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n which_o be_v decay_v in_o tract_n of_o time_n and_o of_o no_o beautiful_a structure_n when_o they_o be_v at_o the_o best_a be_v take_v down_o in_o place_n whereof_o but_o upon_o a_o large_a extent_n of_o ground_n be_v raise_v that_o goodly_a and_o magnificent_a fabric_n which_o we_o now_o behold_v work_n of_o piety_n the_o queen_n restore_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o abbey-land_n that_o be_v in_o her_o possession_n in_o her_o first_o year_n sir_n thomas_n white_a than_o mayor_n erect_v a_o college_n in_o oxford_n call_v s._n john_n college_n he_o also_o erect_v school_n at_o bristol_n and_o reading_n and_o give_v two_o thousand_o pound_n to_o the_o city_n of_o bristol_n to_o purchase_v land_n the_o profit_n whereof_o to_o be_v employ_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o young_a clothier_n in_o her_o three_o year_n die_v sir_n john_n gresham_n late_a mayor_n of_o london_n who_o found_v a_o free-school_n at_o holt_n in_o norfolk_n and_o give_v to_o every_o ward_n in_o london_n ten_o pound_n to_o be_v distribute_v to_o the_o poor_a also_o to_o maids-marriage_n two_o hundred_o pound_n cuthbert_n tunstal_n bishop_n of_o durham_n erect_v a_o goodly_a library_n in_o cambridge_n store_v it_o with_o many_o excellent_a both_o print_v and_o write_a book_n he_o also_o bestow_v much_o upon_o building_n at_o durham_n at_o alnewick_n and_o at_o tunbridge_n thus_o sir_n richard_n baker_n here_o you_o have_v have_v a_o short_a view_n of_o the_o great_a zeal_n and_o piety_n that_o be_v in_o this_o nation_n during_o the_o reign_n of_o this_o queen_n and_o this_o deliver_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o her_o enemy_n the_o most_o zealous_a protestant_n this_o account_n be_v here_o end_v we_o will_v now_o proceed_v to_o relate_v what_o change_n be_v make_v as_o to_o religion_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n wherein_o the_o scene_n be_v total_o alter_v she_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o her_o father_n and_o brother_n in_o go_v on_o with_o the_o destruction_n and_o confusion_n begin_v by_o they_o the_o last_o part_n of_o these_o historical_a collection_n concern_v a_o four_o change_n of_o religion_n make_v for_o politic_a end_n and_o of_o the_o occurrence_n concern_v it_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n a_o preamble_n before_o we_o begin_v this_o queen_n reign_n we_o will_v follow_v dr._n heylyn_n order_n first_o make_v a_o relation_n out_o of_o he_o of_o the_o various_a fortune_n of_o her_o mother_n anne_z boleign_a of_o who_o thus_o he_o write_v in_o his_o history_n of_o reformation_n pag._n 86._o anne_n boleign_a from_o her_o tender_a year_n be_v bring_v up_o in_o the_o court_n of_o france_n who_o return_v into_o england_n be_v prefer_v to_o be_v maid_n of_o honour_n to_o queen_n catherine_n in_o who_o service_n the_o king_n fall_v in_o love_n with_o she_o but_o so_o long_o conceal_v his_o affection_n that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a league_n contract_v betwixt_o she_o and_o the_o young_a lord_n peircy_n son_n to_o the_o earl_n of_o northumberland_n but_o that_o be_v break_v off_o by_o the_o endeavour_n of_o cardinal_n wolsey_n and_o the_o king_n labour_v for_o a_o divorce_n from_o queen_n catherine_n that_o he_o may_v marry_v she_o that_o also_o be_v seek_v to_o be_v obstruct_v by_o the_o cardinal_n which_o be_v understand_v by_o mrs._n anne_n boleign_v she_o seek_v all_o way_n for_o his_o destruction_n and_o prevail_v so_o far_o with_o the_o king_n that_o he_o be_v present_o indict_v and_o attaint_v of_o a_o praemunire_n and_o not_o long_o after_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o thomas_n cromwell_n who_o have_v sormer_o be_v the_o cardinal_n solicitor_n in_o his_o legatine_n court_n envolve_v the_o whole_a clergy_n in_o the_o same_o crime_n with_o he_o and_o by_o persuasion_n of_o this_o man_n he_o require_v of_o the_o say_a clergy_n to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o supreme_a head_n on_o earth_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o to_o make_v no_o new_a canon_n and_o constitution_n not_o to_o execute_v any_o such_o when_o make_v by_o his_o consent_n and_o have_v thus_o bring_v his_o own_o clergy_n under_o his_o command_n he_o be_v the_o less_o solicitous_a how_o his_o matter_n go_v in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n concern_v his_o divorce_n whereupon_o he_o private_o marry_v mistress_n anne_n boleign_v and_o a_o long_a time_n after_o to_o wit_n three_o or_o four_o month_n after_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o princess_n elizabeth_n begin_v a_o parliament_n in_o which_o the_o king_n first_o marriage_n be_v declare_v unlawful_a and_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o crown_n settle_v upon_o his_o issue_n by_o this_o second_o marriage_n a_o oath_n be_v devise_v in_o maintenance_n of_o the_o say_a succession_n and_o not_o long_o after_o moor_n and_o fisher_n be_v execute_v for_o refuse_v to_o take_v that_o oath_n the_o new_a queen_n be_v thus_o settle_v and_o consider_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o she_o have_v such_o different_a interest_n that_o they_o can_v not_o subsist_v together_o she_o resolve_v to_o suppress_v his_o power_n what_o she_o can_v but_o find_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v too_o well_o entrench_v to_o be_v dislodge_v upon_o a_o sudden_a it_o be_v advise_v by_o cromwell_n to_o begin_v with_o take_v in_o the_o outwork_n first_o which_o be_v gain_v it_o will_v be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o beat_v he_o out_o of_o his_o trench_n in_o order_n whereunto_o a_o visitation_n be_v begin_v in_o which_o a_o diligent_a enquiry_n be_v to_o be_v make_v into_o all_o abbey_n priory_n and_o nunnery_n within_o the_o kingdom_n a_o account_n of_o which_o visitation_n and_o the_o d●…ssolution_n of_o abbey_n have_v be_v former_o give_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o but_o the_o new_a queen_n for_o who_o sake_n cromwell_n have_v contrive_v that_o plot_n do_v not_o live_v to_o see_v this_o dissolution_n for_o such_o be_v the_o uncertainty_n of_o humane_a affair_n that_o when_o she_o think_v herself_o most_o secure_a and_o free_a from_o danger_n she_o become_v most_o obnoxious_a to_o the_o ruin_n prepare_v for_o she_o it_o have_v please_v god_n upon_o the_o eight_o of_o january_n to_o put_v a_o end_n unto_o the_o calamity_n of_o the_o virtuous_a but_o unfortunate_a queen_n unto_o who_o bed_n she_o have_v succeed_v the_o news_n whereof_o she_o entertain_v with_o such_o contentment_n that_o she_o cause_v herself_o to_o be_v apparel_v in_o light_a colour_n than_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o season_n or_o the_o sad_a occasion_n whereas_o if_o she_o have_v right_o understand_v she_o own_o condition_n she_o can_v not_o but_o have_v know_v that_o the_o long_a life_n of_o queen_n catherine_n be_v to_o be_v her_o best_a preservation_n against_o all_o change_n which_o the_o king_n be_v loose_a affection_n or_o any_o other_o alteration_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o state_n be_v otherwise_o like_a to_o draw_v upon_o she_o but_o this_o contentment_n hold_v not_o long_o for_o within_o three_o week_n after_o she_o fall_v in_o travail_n in_o which_o she_o miscarry_v of_o a_o son_n to_o the_o extreme_a discontent_n of_o the_o
stretch_v forth_o her_o body_n her_o head_n a●…_n two_o blow_n be_v take_v off_o this_o end_n have_v mary_n queen_n of_o scot_n in_o the_o forty_o six_o year_n of_o her_o age_n and_o of_o her_o imprisonment_n in_o england_n the_o eighteen_o a_o lady_n so_o complete_a in_o all_o excellent_a part_n of_o body_n and_o mind_n that_o it_o must_v needs_o have_v make_v she_o a_o happy_a woman_n if_o she_o have_v not_o be_v a_o queen_n and_o perhaps_o a_o happy_a queen_n too_o if_o she_o have_v not_o be_v heir_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n thus_o baker_n i_o will_v insert_v here_o one_o passage_n more_o concern_v this_o queen_n which_o have_v be_v omit_v in_o order_n of_o this_o story_n dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 160._o certain_a of_o the_o queen_n servant_n be_v assemble_v for_o their_o devotion_n in_o the_o chapel_n royal_a of_o the_o palace_n of_o holy-rood_n house_n in_o edinburgh_n the_o door_n be_v break_v open_a some_o of_o the_o company_n hale_v to_o the_o next_o prison_n and_o the_o rest_n disperse_v the_o priest_n escape_v with_o much_o difficulty_n by_o a_o private_a passage_n the_o queen_n be_v then_o absent_a in_o the_o north_n but_o question_v knox_n at_o her_o return_n as_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o uproar_n by_o which_o expostulation_n she_o get_v nothing_o from_o that_o fiery_a spirit_n but_o neglect_v and_o scorn_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n '_o concern_v this_o '_o barbarous_a action_n chap._n viii_o a_o short_a relation_n concern_v the_o affair_n of_o ireland_n as_o to_o religion_n and_o how_o the_o hugonot_n in_o france_n betray_v the_o english_a dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 128._o we_o shall_v find_v the_o queen_n there_o as_o active_a in_o advance_v the_o reformation_n as_o she_o have_v be_v in_o either_o of_o the_o other_o kingdom_n king_n henry_n have_v first_o break_v the_o ice_n by_o take_v to_o himself_o the_o title_n of_o supreme_a head_n on_o earth_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ireland_n exterminate_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o suppress_v all_o the_o monastery_n and_o religious_a house_n in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o form_n of_o worship_n as_o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v by_o he_o so_o neither_o much_o endeavour_v in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o it_o be_v think_v perhaps_o unsafe_a to_o provoke_v that_o people_n in_o the_o king_n minority_n consider_v with_o how_o many_o trouble_v he_o be_v else_o here_o exercise_v if_o any_o thing_n be_v do_v there●…n_o it_o be_v rather_o do_v by_o toleration_n than_o command_n but_o queen_n elizabeth_n have_v settle_v her_o affair_n in_o england_n and_o undertake_v the_o protection_n of_o the_o scot_n conceive_v herself_o oblige_v in_o point_n of_o piety_n to_o promote_v the_o reformation_n in_o that_o kingdom_n likewise_o a_o parliament_n be_v therefore_o hold_v where_o pass_v a_o act_n restore_v to_o the_o crown_n the_o jurisdiction_n over_o all_o ecclesiastical_a person_n by_o which_o statute_n be_v establish_v both_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n and_o the_o high_a commission_n as_o before_o in_o england_n there_o also_o pass_v a_o act_n for_o the_o unifor●…ity_n of_o common-prayer_n with_o permission_n of_o say_v the_o same_o in_o latin_a where_o the_o minister_n have_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o english_a tongue_n but_o for_o translate_n it_o into_o irish_a as_o it_o be_v afterward_o do_v into_o welch_n there_o be_v no_o care_n take_v the_o people_n be_v require_v by_o that_o statute_n under_o several_a penalty_n to_o frequent_v their_o church_n and_o to_o be_v frequent_a at_o the_o read_n of_o the_o english_a liturgy_n which_o they_o understand_v no_o more_o than_o they_o do_v the_o mass._n by_o which_o mean_v the_o irish_a be_v not_o only_o keep_v in_o continual_a ignorance_n as_o to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o devotion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o we_o have_v likewise_o furnish_v the_o papist_n with_o a_o excellent_a argument_n against_o ourselves_o for_o have_v the_o divine_a service_n celebrate_v in_o such_o a_o language_n as_o the_o people_n do_v not_o understand_v there_o also_o pass_v another_o statute_n for_o restore_v to_o the_o crown_n the_o first_o fruit_n and_o twenty_o part_n of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a promotion_n as_o also_o of_o all_o impropriate_v parsonage_n of_o which_o there_o be_v more_o in_o number_n than_o those_o rectory_n which_o have_v cure_n of_o soul_n the_o like_a act_n pass_v for_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o land_n belong_v to_o the_o knight_n of_o st._n john_n of_o jerusalem_n with_o the_o annul_n of_o all_o lease_n and_o other_o grant_n make_v by_o the_o late_a lord_n prior_n of_o the_o same_o the_o bishop_n of_o ireland_n find_v how_o thing_n go_v in_o england_n and_o know_v that_o the_o like_a alteration_n will_v ensue_v among_o themselves_o resolve_v to_o make_v such_o use_n of_o the_o present_a time_n as_o to_o enrich_v their_o friend_n and_o kindred_n by_o the_o the_o spoil_n of_o their_o church_n to_o which_o end_n they_o so_o dissipate_v the_o revenue_n of_o their_o several_a bishopric_n by_o long_a lease_n fee-farm_n and_o plain_a alienation_n that_o to_o some_o of_o their_o see_v they_o leave_v no_o more_o than_o a_o rent_n of_o five_o mark_n per_fw-la annum_fw-la to_o other_o a_o bare_a yearly_a rent_n of_o forty_o shilling_n to_o the_o high_a displeasure_n of_o god_n the_o reproach_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o perpetual_a ignominy_n of_o themselves_o for_o that_o horrible_a sacrilege_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n concern_v ireland_n how_o the_o english_a be_v betray_v by_o the_o hugonot_n dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 161._o a_o peace_n be_v conclude_v betwixt_o the_o king_n and_o the_o hugonot_n they_o betray_v the_o english_a who_o they_o have_v bring_v into_o the_o country_n and_o join_v their_o force_n with_o the_o rest_n to_o drive_v they_o out_o of_o newhaven_n a_o town_n besiege_v where_o the_o pestilence_n have_v get_v among_o they_o and_o rage_v so_o terrible_o that_o the_o live_n be_v scarce_o able_a to_o bury_v the_o dead_a and_o to_o complete_a the_o misery_n of_o the_o besiege_a the_o prince_n of_o conde_n and_o duke_n of_o monpensier_n who_o have_v be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o huguenot_n party_n show_v themselves_o open_o among_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o camp_n of_o the_o enemy_n whereupon_o they_o be_v necessitate_v to_o yield_v this_o may_v be_v look_v upon_o as_o a_o argument_n of_o god_n displeasure_n on_o this_o nation_n for_o give_v aid_n unto_o the_o rebel_n of_o a_o christian_a prince_n mask_v with_o the_o vizard_n of_o religion_n and_o for_o a_o further_a punishment_n of_o this_o action_n the_o plague_n bring_v out_o of_o france_n by_o the_o garrison_n soldier_n of_o newhaven_n have_v so_o disperse_v it_o ●…elf_n and_o make_v such_o a_o desolation_n in_o many_o part_n of_o the_o realm_n that_o it_o sweep_v away_o above_o twenty_o thousand_o in_o the_o city_n of_o london_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n and_o thus_o far_o as_o to_o these_o particul_n relation_n of_o other_o country_n we_o will_v now_o prosecute_v our_o story_n of_o england_n chap._n ix_o a_o word_n concern_v the_o than_o pope_n letter_n to_o the_o queen_n with_o a_o long_a relation_n concern_v the_o presbyterian_o dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 131._o we_o find_v the_o new_a bishop_n in_o england_n very_o high_a and_o resolute_a in_o oppose_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n whereof_o the_o then_o pope_n be_v inform_v direct_v unto_o the_o queen_n a_o affectionate_a letter_n call_v she_o his_o dear_a daughter_n and_o declare_v unto_o she_o how_o solicitous_a he_o be_v for_o her_o salvation_n and_o the_o prosperity_n of_o her_o people_n which_o he_o tell_v she_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v by_o wander_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n unto_o which_o he_o again_o invite_v she_o with_o much_o christian_a meekness_n but_o the_o queen_n have_v set_v up_o her_o resolution_n to_o go_v forward_o with_o the_o change_n wherefore_o all_o be_v lose_v labour_n but_o all_o this_o while_n there_o be_v no_o care_n take_v to_o suppress_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o calvinist_n who_o secret_o endeavour_v to_o subvert_v the_o english_a liturgy_n for_o whilst_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n bend_v all_o their_o force_n towards_o the_o confute_v of_o the_o papist_n another_o enemy_n appear_v which_o seem_v not_o open_o to_o aim_v at_o the_o church_n doctrine_n but_o quarrel_v rather_o at_o some_o rite_n and_o extrinsecal_n of_o it_o their_o purpose_n be_v to_o take_v in_o the_o outwork_n of_o religion_n first_o before_o they_o level_v their_o artillery_n at_o the_o fort_n itself_o the_o schismatic_n of_o frankfort_n have_v no_o soon_o hear_v of_o queen_n mary_n death_n but_o they_o make_v what_o have_v they_o can_v for_o england_n in_o hope_n of_o fish_v better_a for_o themselves_o in_o a_o trouble_a water_n than_o a_o quiet_a follow_v not_o long_o after_o by_o the_o brethren_n of_o the_o separation_n which_o
vacant_a there_o be_v one_o scambler_n make_v bishop_n of_o peterborough_n but_o during_o the_o vacancy_n thereof_o sir_n william_n cecil_n possess_v himself_o of_o the_o manor_n in_o soak_v which_o belong_v unto_o it_o and_o for_o scambler_n readiness_n to_o confirm_v the_o same_o manor_n to_o he_o he_o prefer_v he_o to_o the_o see_v of_o norwich_n dr_n thomas_n young_a bishop_n of_o st._n david_n be_v translate_v to_o the_o see_v of_o york_n which_o be_v do_v in_o a_o unlucky_a hour_n to_o that_o city_n for_o scarce_o be_v he_o settle_v in_o that_o see_v when_o he_o pull_v down_o the_o goodly_a hall_n and_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o episcopal_a palace_n in_o the_o city_n of_o york_n which_o have_v be_v build_v with_o so_o much_o care_n and_o cost_v by_o one_o of_o his_o predecessor_n in_o the_o year_n 1090_o whether_o it_o be_v for_o covetousness_n to_o make_v money_n of_o the_o material_n of_o it_o or_o out_o of_o sordidness_n to_o avoid_v the_o charge_n of_o hospitality_n let_v they_o guess_v that_o will_n but_o neither_o the_o fill_v up_o of_o those_o vacant_a see_v nor_o the_o queen_n proclamation_n for_o the_o banish_n of_o sectary_n can_v free_v the_o land_n from_o those_o dangerous_a inmate_n or_o preserve_v the_o church_n from_o the_o contagion_n of_o their_o poisonous_a doctrine_n a_o short_a note_n concern_v st._n paul_n church_n dr._n heylyn_n in_o the_o same_o page_n the_o zuinglian_a gospeler_n or_o those_o of_o the_o genevian_a party_n rejoice_v much_o at_o a_o most_o lamentable_a accident_n which_o happen_v to_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o st._n paul_n on_o the_o four_o of_o june_n on_o which_o day_n a_o fearful_a fire_n first_o show_v itself_o near_o the_o top_n of_o the_o steeple_n and_o from_o thence_o burn_v down_o the_o spire_n to_o the_o stonework_n and_o bell_n and_o rage_v so_o terrible_o that_o within_o the_o space_n of_o four_o hour_n the_o timber_n and_o lead_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o whatsoever_o else_o be_v combustible_a in_o it_o be_v burn_v and_o consume_v now_o when_o man_n begin_v to_o cast_v about_o to_o find_v out_o what_o may_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o this_o misfortune_n the_o generality_n of_o the_o zuinglian_a or_o genevian_n party_n affirm_v it_o to_o be_v a_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o a_o old_a idolatrous_a fabric_n not_o thorough_o reform_v and_o purge_v from_o its_o superstition_n and_o will_v have_v be_v content_a that_o all_o other_o cathedral_n in_o the_o kingdom_n have_v be_v so_o destroy_v the_o emperor_n zeal_n dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 142._o the_o emperor_n ferdinand_n be_v inform_v of_o these_o confusion_n of_o religion_n in_o england_n persuade_v the_o queen_n by_o his_o letter_n to_o return_v to_o the_o old_a religion_n and_o not_o relinquish_v the_o communion_n of_o so_o many_o catholic_n king_n and_o prince_n and_o her_o own_o ancestor_n also_o nor_o to_o prefer_v her_o singular_a judgement_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o few_o private_a person_n and_o those_o not_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a neither_o before_o the_o judgement_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n and_o that_o if_o she_o be_v resolve_v to_o persist_v in_o she_o own_o opinion_n at_o least_o that_o she_o will_v deal_v favourable_o with_o so_o many_o reverend_a and_o religious_a prelate_n as_o she_o keep_v in_o prison_n and_o that_o mere_o for_o adhere_v unto_o that_o religion_n which_o himself_o profess_v and_o final_o he_o entreas_fw-la she_o most_o earnest_o that_o she_o will_v set_v apart_o some_o church_n to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o catholic_n where_o they_o may_v free_o exercise_v their_o religion_n a_o nuncio_n send_v to_o the_o queen_n dr._n heylyn_n in_o the_o same_o page_n pope_n pius_n also_o send_v his_o nuncio_n to_o the_o queen_n with_o who_o he_o conceive_v himself_o to_o stand_v upon_o term_n of_o amity_n it_o have_v be_v much_o labour_v by_o the_o guise_n and_o spanish-faction_n to_o divert_v he_o from_o it_o by_o tell_v he_o that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o undervalue_v of_o his_o power_n and_o person_n to_o send_v a_o nuncio_n into_o england_n or_o to_o any_o other_o prince_n of_o the_o same_o persuasion_n who_o open_o profess_v a_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o which_o he_o make_v this_o prudent_a and_o pious_a answer_n that_o he_o will_v humble_v himself_o even_o to_o heresy_n itself_o in_o regard_n whatsoever_o be_v do_v to_o gain_v soul_n to_o christ_n do_v beseem_v that_o see_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n chap._n xi_o of_o the_o contest_v between_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o presbyterian_o and_o how_o they_o seek_v to_o undermine_v the_o say_a church_n dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 144._o the_o genevian_o sleep_v not_o all_o this_o while_n but_o be_v busy_o employ_v in_o practise_v against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n nothing_o be_v able_a to_o satisfy_v they_o but_o the_o nakedness_n and_o simplicity_n of_o the_o zuinglian_a church_n the_o new_a fashion_n take_v up_o at_o frankfort_n and_o the_o presbytery_n of_o geneva_n and_o they_o drive_v on_o so_o fast_o upon_o it_o that_o in_o some_o place_n they_o have_v take_v down_o the_o step_n where_o the_o altar_n stand_v and_o bring_v the_o table_n into_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o church_n in_o other_o they_o lay_v aside_o the_o ancient_a use_n of_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o baptism_n and_o leave_v the_o answer_n for_o the_o child_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o father_n the_o weekly_a fast_n the_o time_n of_o lent_n and_o all_o other_o day_n of_o abstinence_n be_v look_v upon_o as_o superstitious_a observation_n no_o fast_o by_o they_o allow_v of_o but_o occasional_o only_a and_o they_o too_o of_o their_o own_o appoint_v and_o the_o like_a course_n they_o take_v also_o with_o festival_n day_n neglect_v those_o which_o have_v be_v institute_v as_o human_a invention_n not_o fit_a to_o be_v retain_v in_o a_o reform_a church_n and_o final_o that_o they_o may_v bring_v in_o their_o outlandish_a doctrine_n with_o such_o foreign_a usage_n they_o have_v procure_v some_o of_o the_o inferior_a ordinary_n to_o impose_v upon_o their_o several_a parish_n certain_a new_a book_n of_o sermon_n and_o exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o stop_v these_o proceed_n the_o archbishop_n with_o advice_n of_o some_o of_o the_o bishop_n set_v forth_o a_o book_n of_o order_n but_o notwithstanding_o these_o order_n the_o calvinist_n drive_v on_o their_o design_n as_o appear_v by_o this_o follow_a relation_n of_o dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 154._o the_o genevian_o have_v already_o begin_v to_o blow_v the_o coal_n and_o bring_v fuel_n to_o they_o but_o it_o be_v only_o for_o the_o burn_a of_o cap_n and_o rochet_n the_o common-prayer-book_n be_v so_o fortify_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n that_o there_o be_v no_o assault_v of_o it_o and_o as_o to_o episcopal_a government_n it_o be_v so_o interweave_v and_o incorporate_v with_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n so_o twist_v in_o with_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o crown_n and_o the_o royal_a interest_n that_o they_o must_v first_o be_v in_o a_o capacity_n of_o trample_v on_o the_o law_n and_o the_o crown_n together_o before_o they_o can_v attempt_v the_o destruction_n of_o it_o but_o cap_n and_o tippet_n rochet_n and_o lawn-sleeve_n and_o canonical_a coat_n seem_v to_o be_v build_v upon_o no_o better_a foundation_n than_o superstitious_a custom_n some_o old_a popish_a canon_n or_o at_o the_o best_a some_o temporary_a injunction_n of_o the_o queen_n devise_v which_o can_v not_o have_v the_o power_n and_o effect_n of_o law_n this_o game_n they_o have_v in_o chase_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n which_o now_o they_o be_v resolve_v to_o follow_v to_o the_o very_a last_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o these_o man_n in_o matter_n of_o ceremony_n prompt_v the_o bishop_n to_o make_v trial_n of_o their_o orthodoxy_n in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n whereupon_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n late_o agree_v upon_o be_v require_v to_o be_v subscribe_v to_o in_o all_o place_n with_o threaten_v no_o less_o than_o deprivation_n to_o such_o as_o wilful_o refuse_v many_o there_o be_v that_o boggle_v at_o it_o as_o they_o all_o do_v but_o yet_o not_o so_o perverse_o nor_o in_o such_o great_a number_n as_o when_o their_o faction_n be_v grow_v strong_a and_o improve_v to_o multitude_n some_o stumble_v at_o it_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o first_o clause_n add_v to_o the_o twenty_o article_n about_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n other_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o thirty_o six_o touch_v the_o consecration_n of_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n some_o think_v they_o attribute_v more_o authority_n to_o the_o supreme_a magistrate_n over_o all_o person_n and_o cause_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a than_o can_v consist_v with_o that_o independency_n which_o calvin_n arrogate_a unto_o his_o presbyter_n and_o other_o church_n of_o the_o
those_o of_o his_o own_o party_n but_o by_o many_o other_o grave_z and_o moderate_a man_n who_o do_v not_o look_v at_o first_o into_o the_o danger_n which_o ensue_v upon_o it_o his_o platform_n at_o geneva_n be_v make_v the_o only_a pattern_n by_o which_o all_o reform_a church_n be_v to_o frame_v their_o government_n his_o write_n be_v make_v the_o only_a rule_n by_o which_o all_o student_n in_o divinity_n be_v to_o square_v their_o judgement_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n concern_v cartwright_n leicester_n and_o calvin_n chap._n xiii_o the_o first_o origine_fw-la of_o the_o name_n puritan_n and_o of_o the_o protestation_n devise_v to_o hinder_v the_o disorder_n cause_v by_o this_o sect._n anno_fw-la reg._n eliz._n 7._o dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 172._o this_o year_n the_o zuinglian_a or_o calvinian_a faction_n begin_v to_o be_v first_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o puritan_n which_o name_n have_v ever_o since_o be_v appropriate_v to_o they_o because_o of_o their_o pretend_v to_o a_o great_a purity_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n than_o be_v hold_v forth_o unto_o they_o as_o they_o give_v it_o out_o in_o the_o common-prayer-book_n and_o to_o a_o great_a opposition_n to_o the_o rite_n and_o usage_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o this_o purity_n be_v accompany_v with_o such_o irreverence_n this_o opposion_n draw_v along_o with_o it_o so_o much_o licentiousness_n as_o give_v great_a scandal_n and_o offence_n to_o all_o man_n so_o that_o it_o be_v high_a time_n to_o give_v a_o check_n to_o those_o disorder_n and_o confusion_n which_o by_o their_o practice_n and_o their_o preach_n they_o have_v produce_v and_o thereby_o lay_v the_o ground_n of_o that_o woeful_a schism_n which_o soon_o after_o follow_v for_o the_o prevent_v these_o disorder_n for_o the_o future_a a_o protestation_n be_v devise_v to_o be_v take_v by_o all_o parson_n vicar_n and_o curate_n by_o which_o they_o be_v require_v to_o declare_v and_o promise_v 1._o that_o they_o will_v not_o preach_v nor_o public_o interpret_v but_o only_o read_v that_o which_o be_v appoint_v by_o public_a authority_n 2._o that_o they_o will_v use_v sobriety_n in_o apparel_n and_o especial_o in_o the_o church_n at_o common_a prayer_n according_a to_o order_n appoint_v 3._o that_o they_o will_v not_o open_o meddle_v with_o any_o artificer_n occupation_n as_o covetous_o to_o seek_v a_o gain_n thereby_o have_v in_o ecclesiastical_a live_n twenty_o noble_n or_o above_o by_o the_o year_n which_o protestation_n if_o it_o either_o have_v be_v general_o press_v upon_o all_o the_o clergy_n as_o perhaps_o it_o be_v not_o or_o be_v better_o keep_v by_o they_o that_o take_v it_o the_o church_n may_v questionless_a have_v be_v save_v from_o those_o distraction_n which_o by_o the_o puritan-innovator_n be_v occasion_v in_o it_o thus_o far_o dr._n heylyn_n concern_v this_o strange_a reformation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n doctor_n heylyn_n have_v prosecute_v his_o history_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n until_o the_o eight_o year_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n be_v not_o willing_a to_o wade_v any_o further_a into_o the_o confusion_n of_o those_o time_n and_o therefore_o make_v this_o follow_a conclusion_n of_o it_o chap._n fourteen_o the_o order_n of_o the_o establishment_n of_o this_o new_a church_n and_o of_o the_o strange_a disorder_n it_o be_v at_o this_o time_n bring_v unto_o by_o the_o puritan_n faction_n dr._n heylyn_n conclusion_n of_o his_o history_n thus_o we_o have_v see_v the_o public_a liturgy_n confirm_v in_o parliament_n with_o divers_a penalty_n on_o all_o those_o who_o either_o do_v reproach_v it_o or_o neglect_v to_o use_v it_o or_o wilful_o withdraw_v their_o attendance_n from_o it_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n declare_v in_o the_o book_n of_o article_n external_n matter_n in_o officiate_a god_n public_a service_n and_o the_o apparel_n of_o the_o clergy_n regulate_v by_o the_o book_n of_o order_n and_o advertisement_n the_o episcopal_a government_n settle_v the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v therefore_o now_o fix_v on_o her_o natural_a pillar_n of_o doctrine_n government_n and_o worship_n not_o otherwise_o to_o have_v be_v shake_v than_o by_o the_o blind_a zeal_n of_o such_o furious_a sampson_n as_o be_v resolve_v to_o pull_v it_o on_o their_o own_o head_n rather_o than_o to_o suffer_v it_o to_o stand_v and_o here_o it_o will_v be_v time_n to_o conclude_v this_o history_n have_v take_v a_o brief_a view_n of_o the_o state_n of_o this_o church_n with_o all_o the_o aberration_n from_o its_o first_o constitution_n as_o it_o stand_v at_o this_o time_n when_o the_o puritan_n faction_n have_v begin_v to_o disturb_v its_o order_n and_o that_o this_o may_v be_v manifest_v with_o a_o great_a certainty_n i_o will_v speak_v it_o in_o the_o word_n of_o one_o who_o live_v and_o write_v his_o knowledge_n of_o it_o at_o this_o time_n i_o mean_v john_n rastel_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o bishop_n challenge_n who_o though_o he_o be_v a_o papist_n and_o a_o priest_n yet_o i_o conceive_v he_o have_v faithful_o deliver_v too_o many_o sad_a truth_n in_o these_o particular_n three_o book_n he_o write_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o three_o year_n against_o bishop_n jewel_n in_o one_o of_o which_o he_o make_v this_o address_n unto_o he_o and_o though_o you_o mr._n jewel_n as_o i_o have_v hear_v say_v do_v take_v the_o bread_n into_o your_o hand_n when_o you_o celebrate_v solemn_o yet_o thousand_o there_o be_v of_o your_o inferior_a minister_n who_o esteem_v it_o as_o death_n to_o be_v bind_v to_o any_o such_o external_n fashion_n and_o your_o order_n of_o celebrate_v the_o communion_n be_v so_o unadvised_o conceive_v that_o every_o man_n be_v leave_v unto_o his_o private_a rule_n or_o canon_n whether_o he_o will_v take_v the_o bread_n into_o his_o hand_n or_o let_v it_o stand_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o table_n where_o it_o please_v the_o sexton_n or_o parish-clerk_n to_o set_v they_o pag._n 28._o thus_o as_o to_o the_o communion_n now_o as_o to_o altar_n he_o have_v these_o word_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n altar_n be_v use_v among_o christian_n upon_o which_o they_o offer_v the_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n yet_o your_o company_n to_o declare_v what_o follower_n they_o be_v of_o antiquity_n do_v account_n i_o even_o among_o one_o of_o the_o kind_n of_o idolatry_n if_o a_o altar_n be_v keep_v stand_v and_o indeed_o you_o follow_v a_o certain_a antiquity_n not_o of_o catholic_n but_o of_o desperate_a heretic_n optatus_n write_v of_o the_o donatist_n say_v that_o they_o do_v break_v raze_v and_o remove_v the_o altar_n of_o god_n pag._n 34._o &_o 165._o now_o as_o to_o the_o objection_n of_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n he_o write_v thus_o where_o sing_v be_v use_v what_o shall_v we_o say_v to_o the_o case_n of_o the_o people_n that_o kneel_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o let_v they_o hearken_v at_o the_o chancel-door_n itself_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v much_o wise_a beside_o how_o will_v you_o provide_v for_o great_a parish_n where_o there_o be_v a_o thousand_o people_n a_o objection_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o then_o to_o come_v to_o the_o apostle_n where_o do_v you_o read_v that_o in_o external_n behaviour_n they_o do_v wear_v frock_n or_o gown_n or_o four_o cornered_a cap_n or_o that_o at_o their_o prayer_n they_o sit_v in_o side_n fall_v prostrate_a or_o sing_v te_fw-la d●…um_fw-la or_o look_v towards_o the_o south_n or_o wear_v cope_n of_o t●…ssue_n or_o velvet_n with_o a_o thousand_o more_o such_o question_n pag._n 446._o the_o next_o question_n he_o ask_v he_o be_v where_o the_o church_n of_o god_n so_o well_o order_v with_o excellent_a man_n of_o learning_n and_o piety_n be_v ever_o constrain_v to_o suffer_v cobbler_n weaver_n tinker_n tanner_n card-maker_n tapster_n fiddler_n gaoler_n and_o other_o of_o like_a profession_n not_o only_o to_o enter_v into_o disputation_n with_o she_o but_o also_o to_o climb_v up_o into_o pulpit_n and_o to_o keep_v the_o place_n of_o priest_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 2._o or_o that_o any_o bagpiper_n horse-courser_n or_o jailer_n be_v admit_v then_o into_o the_o clergy_n pag._n 162_o or_o that_o any_o bishop_n than_o do_v swear_v by_o his_o honour_n when_o in_o his_o visitation_n he_o will_v warrant_v his_o promise_n to_o some_o poor_a prisoner-priest_n under_o he_o or_o not_o satisfy_v with_o his_o imprison_n do_v cry_v out_o and_o call_v upon_o the_o prince_n not_o dispose_v that_o way_n to_o put_v they_o to_o most_o cruel_a death_n or_o that_o refuse_v to_o wear_v a_o white_a rocket_n or_o to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o laity_n by_o some_o decent_a priest_n apparel_n pag._n 162._o or_o gather_v a_o benevolence_n of_o his_o clergy_n to_o set_v he_o up_o in_o his_o household_n pag._n 163._o
themselves_o to_o be_v a_o assembly_n wherein_o the_o lord_n cause_n can_v not_o be_v hear_v wherein_o the_o infelicity_n of_o the_o miserable_a can_v not_o be_v respect_v wherein_o truth_n religion_n and_o piety_n can_v bear_v no_o sway_n a_o assembly_n that_o willing_o call_v for_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o whole_a realm_n and_o final_o that_o not_o a_o man_n of_o their_o seed_n shall_v prosper_v be_v a_o parliament_n man_n or_o bear_v rule_n in_o england_n any_o more_o this_o necessary_a preparation_n be_v thus_o premise_v they_o tender_v to_o the_o parliament_n a_o book_n of_o the_o form_n of_o common-prayer_n by_o they_o desire_v contain_v also_o in_o effect_n the_o whole_a pretend_a discipline_n so_o revise_v by_o travers_n and_o their_o petition_n in_o behalf_n of_o it_o be_v in_o these_o word_n follow_v to_o wit_n may_v it_o therefore_o please_v your_o majesty_n that_o the_o book_n hereunto_o annex_v and_o every_o thing_n therein_o contain_v may_v be_v from_o henceforth_o use_v through_o all_o your_o majesty_n dominion_n but_o in_o this_o they_o be_v able_a to_o effect_v nothing_o it_o may_v seem_v strange_a that_o queen_n elizabeth_n shall_v be_v so_o severe_a to_o her_o english_a puritan_n and_o yet_o protect_v and_o countenance_v the_o presbyterian_o in_o all_o other_o place_n but_o that_o great_a monster_n in_o nature_n call_v reason_n of_o state_n be_v bring_v to_o plead_v in_o her_o defence_n leicester_n walsingham_n and_o other_o give_v such_o encouragement_n underhand_o to_o the_o presbyterian_o that_o they_o resolve_v to_o proceed_v towards_o the_o put_n of_o their_o discipline_n in_o execution_n these_o great_a person_n do_v likewise_o entertain_v their_o clamour_n and_o promote_v their_o petition_n at_o the_o council-table_n cross_v and_o thwart_v the_o archbishop_n whensoever_o any_o cause_n which_o concern_v the_o brethren_n be_v bring_v before_o they_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o hence_o what_o a_o hard_a game_n this_o prelate_n have_v to_o play_v when_o such_o great_a master_n in_o the_o art_n hold_v the_o card_n against_o he_o for_o at_o that_o time_n the_o earl_n of_o huntingdon_n and_o leicester_n walsingham_n and_o knoll_v comptroller_n of_o the_o household_n a_o profess_a genevian_n be_v his_o open_a adversary_n burleigh_n a_o neutral_a at_o the_o best_a thus_o dr._n heylyn_n the_o order_n of_o their_o government_n both_o at_o london_n and_o in_o the_o country_n dr._n heylyn_n pag._n 213._o the_o book_n of_o discipline_n be_v publish_v be_v no_o where_o better_a welcome_a than_o in_o london_n the_o wealth_n and_o pride_n of_o which_o city_n be_v never_o want_v to_o cherish_v and_o support_v such_o as_o most_o apparent_o oppose_v themselves_o to_o the_o present_a authority_n or_o practise_v the_o introduce_v of_o innovation_n both_o in_o church_n and_o state_n the_o several_a church_n or_o conventicle_n rather_o which_o they_o have_v in_o the_o city_n they_o reduce_v into_o one_o great_a and_o general_a classis_fw-la of_o which_o cartwright_n egerton_n or_o travers_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n moderator_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v there_o order_v be_v esteem_v for_o current_n from_o thence_o the_o brethren_n of_o other_o place_n do_v fetch_v their_o light_n and_o as_o doubt_n do_v arise_v thither_o they_o be_v send_v to_o be_v resolve_v the_o classical_a and_o synodical_a decree_n of_o other_o place_n not_o be_v authentical_a till_o they_o be_v ratify_v in_o this_o which_o they_o hold_v the_o supreme_a consistory_n and_o chief_a tribunal_n of_o the_o nation_n but_o in_o the_o country_n none_o appear_v more_o forward_o than_o those_o of_o northampton_n daventry_n and_o nottingham_n and_o the_o device_n be_v take_v up_o in_o most_o part_n of_o england_n but_o especial_o in_o warwickeshire_n suffolk_n norfolk_z essex_n etc._n etc._n in_o these_o class_n they_o determine_v point_n of_o doctrine_n interpret_v hard_a place_n of_o scripture_n deliver_v their_o resolution_n in_o such_o case_n of_o conscience_n as_o be_v bring_v before_o they_o decide_v doubt_n and_o difficulty_n touch_v contract_n of_o marriage_n etc._n etc._n and_o whatsoever_o be_v conclude_v by_o such_o as_o be_v present_a yet_o still_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o better_a judgement_n of_o the_o london_n brethren_n become_v forthwith_o bind_v to_o the_o rest_n none_o be_v admit_v into_o any_o of_o the_o aforesaid_a class_n before_o he_o have_v promise_v under_o his_o hand_n that_o he_o will_v submit_v himself_o and_o be_v obedient_a unto_o all_o such_o order_n and_o decree_n as_o be_v set_v down_o by_o the_o classis_fw-la to_o be_v observe_v at_o these_o class_n they_o inquire_v into_o the_o life_n and_o doctrine_n of_o all_o that_o have_v subscribe_v unto_o they_o censure_v some_o and_o depose_v other_o as_o they_o see_v occasion_n unto_o every_o classis_fw-la there_o belong_v a_o register_n who_o take_v the_o head_n of_o all_o that_o pass_v and_o see_v they_o careful_o enter_v into_o a_o book_n for_o that_o purpose_n that_o they_o may_v remain_v upon_o record_n thus_o dr._n heylyn_n give_v a_o full_a relation_n of_o the_o progress_n of_o presbytery_n in_o this_o nation_n now_o i_o will_v make_v a_o short_a relation_n of_o the_o queen_n proceed_n against_o catholic_n chap._n xxiii_o of_o the_o great_a endeavour_n use_v total_o to_o extirpate_v catholic_n religion_n by_o penal_a law_n and_o a_o horrid_a effusion_n of_o blood_n stow_z pag._n 678._o there_o be_v a_o act_n of_o parliament_n pass_v 5_o eliz_n in_o the_o body_n whereof_o it_o be_v provide_v that_o no_o man_n live_v or_o reside_v in_o the_o queen_n dominion_n shall_v from_o thenceforth_o maintain_v the_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o for_o the_o better_a discovery_n of_o all_o such_o person_n as_o may_v be_v popish_o affect_v it_o be_v enact_v that_o none_o shall_v be_v admit_v to_o receive_v order_n in_o the_o church_n or_o to_o take_v any_o degree_n in_o either_o of_o the_o university_n or_o to_o be_v barrister_n or_o bencher_n in_o any_o of_o the_o inn_n of_o court_n etc._n etc._n or_o to_o practise_v as_o a_o attorney_n or_o otherwise_o to_o bear_v any_o office_n in_o any_o of_o the_o court_n at_o westminster-hall_n or_o any_o other_o court_n whatsoever_o till_o they_o have_v take_v the_o oath_n of_o surpemacy_n it_o be_v likewise_o make_v treason_n for_o any_o one_o to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o to_o be_v make_v priest_n beyond_o the_o sea_n upon_o which_o two_o account_n very_o many_o be_v afterward_o execute_v a_o proclamation_n also_o be_v set_v forth_o that_o whosoever_o have_v any_o child_n beyond_o the_o sea_n shall_v by_o a_o certain_a day_n call_v they_o home_o commissioner_n be_v send_v into_o all_o part_n and_o division_n of_o the_o realm_n to_o inquire_v out_o priest_n and_o such_o as_o be_v reconcile_v by_o they_o further_o charge_v all_o manner_n of_o person_n to_o retain_v none_o in_o their_o house_n without_o due_a examination_n of_o their_o condition_n manner_n of_o life_n and_o conformity_n in_o religion_n and_o to_o keep_v thereof_o a_o register_n to_o be_v show_v to_o the_o say_a commissioner_n if_o they_o shall_v demand_v it_o in_o pursuance_n of_o which_o commission_n a_o priest_n be_v take_v say_v mass_n in_o the_o lord_n morley_n house_n and_o the_o lady_n morley_n with_o her_o child_n and_o divers_a other_o be_v also_o take_v hear_v the_o same_o mass._n there_o be_v also_o take_v at_o the_o same_o time_n another_o priest_n at_o the_o lady_n gilford_n in_o trinity-lane_n for_o say_v mass_n and_o for_o hear_v the_o say_a mass_n the_o lady_n gilford_n with_o divers_a other_o gentlewoman_n be_v take_v and_o likewise_o at_o the_o same_o instant_n be_v take_v two_o priest_n in_o the_o lady_n brown_n house_n in_o cow-lane_n for_o say_v mass_n with_o the_o lady_n herself_o and_o divers_a other_o for_o hear_v it_o all_o which_o person_n be_v indict_v convict_a and_o have_v the_o law_n execute_v according_a to_o the_o statute_n there_o be_v find_v in_o their_o several_a chapel_n bead_n image_n palm_n chalice_n cross_n vestment_n pix_n pax_n and_o suchlike_a thus_o stow._n he_o that_o desire_v to_o be_v full_o satisfy_v concern_v all_o the_o severe_a law_n make_v against_o catholic_n in_o this_o queen_n reign_n may_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o penal_a statute_n now_o we_o will_v proceed_v to_o a_o further_a execution_n of_o these_o law_n by_o a_o horrid_a effusion_n of_o blood_n two_o layman_n and_o one_o priest_n where_o hang_v bowel_a and_o quarter_v for_o deny_v the_o queen_n supremacy_n stow_z pag._n 684_o and_o 685._o six_o priest_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o tower_n to_o tyburn_n and_o there_o hang_v bowel_a and_o quarter_v stow_z pag._n 695._o four_o priest_n more_o be_v find_v guilty_a of_o high-treason_n in_o be_v make_v priest_n beyond_o sea_n and_o by_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o have_v judgement_n to_o be_v hang_v bowel_v
and_o quarter_v who_o be_v all_o execute_v at_o tyburn_n stow_n pag._n 698._o two_o other_o priest_n be_v condemn_v for_o treason_n for_o be_v make_v priest_n at_o rheims_n in_o france_n be_v draw_v to_o tyburn_n and_o there_o hang_v bowele_v and_o quarter_v stow_z pag._n 719._o as_o likewise_o two_o other_o priest_n be_v condemn_v and_o execute_v for_o the_o same_o cause_n stow_z pag._n 720._o six_o priest_n more_o be_v execute_v for_o be_v make_v priest_n beyond_o sea_n and_o four_o secular_a man_n for_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o four_o other_o for_o relieve_v and_o encourage_v the_o other_o moreover_o thirteen_o secular_a man_n be_v upon_o the_o same_o account_n hang_v in_o several_a place_n and_o a_o gentlewoman_n for_o convey_v a_o cord_n to_o a_o priest_n in_o bridewell_n whereby_o he_o let_v himself_o down_o and_o escape_v stow_z pag._n 750._o another_o priest_n be_v hang_v head_a and_o quarter_v at_o kingston_n and_o after_o this_o two_o more_o for_o be_v make_v priest_n at_o paris_n and_o a_o secular_a man_n for_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n stow_z in_o the_o same_o page_n there_o be_v also_o another_o priest_n hang_v for_o be_v make_v priest_n beyond_o the_o sea_n and_o two_o secular_a man_n for_o relieve_v he_o the_o priest_n be_v hang_v bowel_v and_o quarter_v in_o fleetstreet_n at_o fetter-lane_n end_n and_o the_o other_o two_o one_o in_o smithfield_n and_o the_o other_o at_o graies-inn-lane_n end_n stow_z pag._n 761._o three_o priest_n more_o with_o four_z other_o for_o relieve_v they_o be_v execute_v one_o of_o which_o be_v swithun_n wells_n gentleman_n stow_z pag._n 764._o another_o priest_n be_v covict_v for_o be_v a_o priest_n and_o reconcile_a a_o haberdasher_n who_o be_v likewise_o convict_v of_o high_a treason_n for_o be_v so_o reconcile_v and_o of_o felony_n for_o relieve_v the_o say_v priest_n the_o priest_n be_v execute_v in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n stow_z in_o the_o same_o page_n likewise_o another_o secular_a priest_n and_o a_o jesuit_n hang_v cut_v down_o alive_a and_o then_o bowel_v and_o quarter_v stow_z pag._n 766_o 769._o one_o priest_n more_o hang_v bowel_a and_o quarter_v for_o be_v make_v priest_n beyond_o the_o sea_n his_o head_n be_v set_v upon_o the_o pillory_n in_o southwark_n and_o his_o quarter_n in_o the_o highway_n towards_o newington_n and_o lambeth_n stow_z pag._n 788._o a_o layman_n be_v hang_v bowel_v and_o quarter_v for_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o five_o priest_n more_o be_v hang_v and_o quarter_v for_o come_v into_o this_o realm_n and_o with_o one_o of_o they_o a_o gentleman_n be_v likewise_o execute_v for_o relieve_v and_o lodging_n they_o in_o his_o house_n stow_z pag._n 790._o another_o priest_n after_o seven_o year_n imprisonment_n be_v hang_v bowel_v and_o quarter_v for_o come_v into_o england_n stow_z pag._n 793._o two_o priest_n more_o hang_v and_o quarter_v for_o the_o same_o cause_n also_o the_o same_o day_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n be_v hang_v a_o gentlewoman_n a_o widow_n for_o relieve_v a_o priest_n stow_z pag._n 795._o four_o priest_n more_o hang_v bowel_v and_o quarter_v upon_o the_o same_o account_n stow_z pag._n 804._o the_o earl_n of_o arundel_n see_v this_o great_a severity_n use_v against_o catholic_n resolve_v to_o quit_v the_o kingdom_n but_o before_o he_o begin_v his_o journey_n he_o leave_v behind_o he_o this_o follow_a letter_n to_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o queen_n after_o his_o departure_n thus_o relate_v by_o howes_n upon_o stow_n pag._n 703._o the_o letter_n madam_n i_o perceive_v in_o my_o late_a trouble_n how_o narrow_o my_o life_n be_v seek_v and_o that_o my_o innocency_n be_v not_o sufficient_a warrant_n to_o protect_v i_o i_o know_v myself_o and_o beside_o be_v charge_v by_o your_o council_n to_o be_v of_o that_o religion_n which_o they_o account_v odious_a and_o dangerous_a to_o your_o estate_n last_o but_o principal_o i_o weigh_v in_o what_o a_o miserable_a and_o doubtful_a case_n my_o soul_n have_v be_v if_o my_o life_n have_v be_v take_v away_o as_o it_o be_v not_o not_o unlikely_a by_o former_a trouble_n for_o i_o protest_v the_o great_a burden_n that_o rest_v in_o my_o conscience_n be_v because_o i_o have_v not_o live_v according_a to_o the_o prescript_n rule_v of_o that_o which_o i_o undoubted_o believe_v and_o assure_o presume_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n wherefore_o be_v induce_v by_o all_o these_o reason_n but_o chief_o move_v by_o this_o last_o argument_n i_o think_v that_o the_o not_o perform_v my_o duty_n to_o god_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o i_o know_v will_v please_v he_o best_o may_v be_v a_o principal_a occasion_n of_o my_o late_a punishment_n and_o therefore_o resolve_v whilst_o i_o have_v opportunity_n to_o take_v that_o course_n which_o may_v be_v sure_a to_o save_v my_o soul_n from_o the_o danger_n of_o shipwreck_n although_o my_o body_n be_v subject_a to_o peril_n of_o misfortune_n and_o ever_o since_o that_o time_n i_o follow_v and_o pursue_v this_o good_a intent_n of_o i_o though_o i_o perceive_v somewhat_o more_o danger_n to_o my_o estate_n yet_o i_o humble_o thank_v god_n i_o have_v find_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o quiet_a of_o mind_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n i_o have_v just_a occasion_n to_o esteem_v my_o pass_a trouble_n as_o my_o great_a felicity_n for_o both_o of_o they_o be_v though_o indirect_o the_o mean_n to_o lead_v i_o into_o that_o course_n which_o ever_o bring_v perfect_a quietness_n and_o only_o procure_v eternal_a happiness_n and_o be_v resolve_v rather_o to_o endure_v my_o punishment_n than_o willing_o to_o decline_v from_o what_o i_o have_v begin_v i_o bend_v myself_o whole_o as_o near_o as_o i_o can_v to_o continue_v in_o the_o same_o without_o do_v any_o act_n that_o be_v repugnant_a to_o my_o faith_n and_o profession_n and_o by_o mean_n hereof_o be_v compel_v to_o do_v many_o thing_n which_o may_v procure_v peril_n to_o myself_o and_o be_v a_o occasion_n of_o mislike_n to_o your_o majesty_n for_o the_o first_o day_n of_o parliament_n when_o your_o majesty_n with_o all_o your_o nobility_n be_v hear_v of_o a_o sermon_n in_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o westminster_n above_o in_o the_o chancel_n i_o be_v drive_v to_o walk_v by_o myself_o below_o in_o one_o of_o the_o isle_n and_o so_o upon_o several_a other_o occasion_n these_o thing_n with_o many_o other_o i_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n escape_v but_o only_o by_o a_o open_a and_o plain_a discovery_n of_o myself_o as_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o my_o refuse_n wherefore_o since_o i_o see_v that_o of_o necessity_n it_o must_v short_o be_v discover_v and_o withal_o remember_v what_o a_o watchful_a and_o jealous_a eye_n be_v carrid_a over_o all_o those_o that_o be_v know_v to_o be_v recusant_n and_o withal_o reflect_v how_o all_o their_o lodging_n be_v continual_o search_v and_o to_o how_o great_a danger_n they_o be_v subject_a if_o a_o jesuit_n or_o priest_n be_v find_v in_o their_o house_n that_o either_o i_o can_v not_o serve_v god_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o i_o have_v profess_v or_o else_o i_o must_v incur_v the_o hazard_n of_o great_a punishment_n i_o stand_v resolute_a and_o unremoveable_a to_o continue_v in_o the_o first_o though_o it_o be_v with_o danger_n of_o my_o life_n and_o therefore_o do_v apply_v my_o mind_n to_o devise_v what_o mean_v i_o can_v find_v out_o for_o avoid_v the_o last_o long_o i_o be_v debate_v with_o myself_o what_o course_n to_o take_v but_o when_o i_o consider_v in_o what_o continual_a danger_n i_o do_v remain_v here_o in_o england_n both_o by_o the_o heretofore_o establish_v and_o by_o a_o new_a act_n late_o make_v i_o think_v it_o the_o safe_a way_n to_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o remain_v in_o some_o other_o place_n where_o i_o may_v live_v without_o danger_n of_o my_o conscience_n without_o offence_n to_o your_o majesty_n without_o this_o servile_a subjection_n to_o my_o enemy_n and_o without_o this_o daily_a peril_n of_o my_o life_n and_o yet_o i_o be_v draw_v by_o such_o forcible_a persuasion_n to_o be_v of_o another_o opinion_n that_o i_o can_v not_o easy_o resolve_v what_o to_o do_v for_o on_o the_o one_o side_n my_o native_a country_n my_o friend_n my_o wife_n and_o kindred_n do_v invite_v i_o to_o stay_v on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o power_n of_o my_o enemy_n the_o remembrance_n of_o my_o former_a trouble_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o my_o present_a danger_n do_v hasten_v i_o to_o go_v and_o in_o the_o end_n i_o find_v no_o middle_a course_n but_o either_o i_o must_v venture_v to_o live_v in_o extreme_a poverty_n abroad_o or_o to_o be_v sure_a to_o remain_v in_o continual_a danger_n at_o home_n i_o regard_v more_o the_o hazard_n of_o my_o life_n wherein_o stand_v the_o peril_n of_o my_o estate_n and_o rather_o seek_v
principality_n coin_n or_o else_o follow_v new_a opinion_n st._n augustin_n likewise_o note_n in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr haeresibus_fw-la that_o the_o people_n need_v not_o to_o be_v curious_a to_o know_v what_o opinion_n heretic_n hold_v much_o less_o to_o labour_v to_o confute_v they_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o they_o to_o know_v that_o they_o be_v condemn_v and_o st._n cyprian_n epist._n 52._o num._n 7._o say_v notable_o to_o antonianus_n demand_v curious_o what_o heresy_n novatian_n teach_v no_o matter_n say_v he_o what_o heresy_n he_o hold_v or_o preach_v when_o he_o teach_v without_o that_o be_v to_o say_v out_o of_o the_o church_n now_o although_o heretic_n be_v often_o incorrigible_a yet_o the_o church_n of_o god_n cease_v not_o by_o all_o mean_v possible_a to_o revoke_v they_o therefore_o st._n augustin_n say_v epist._n 162._o the_o heretic_n himself_o though_o swell_v with_o odious_a and_o detestable_a pride_n and_o mad_a with_o the_o frowardness_n of_o wicked_a contention_n as_o we_o admonish_v that_o he_o be_v avoid_v lest_o he_o deceive_v such_o as_o be_v weak_a and_o little_a one_o so_o we_o refuse_v not_o by_o all_o mean_v possible_a to_o seek_v his_o amendment_n and_o reformation_n now_o to_o understand_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o apostle_n here_o say_v that_o a_o heretic_n be_v condemn_v by_o his_o own_o judgement_n we_o be_v to_o know_v that_o some_o other_o grievous_a offender_n be_v separate_v by_o excommunication_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o fellowship_n of_o god_n church_n by_o the_o sentence_n of_o their_o superior_n in_o the_o same_o church_n but_o heretic_n more_o miserable_a and_o unfortunate_a than_o they_o run_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o their_o own_o accord_n and_o so_o give_v sentence_n against_o their_o own_o soul_n to_o damnation_n now_o further_o to_o show_v the_o reason_n why_o heresy_n which_o seek_v to_o divide_v and_o tear_v in_o piece_n the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v so_o horrid_a a_o crime_n st._n paul_n here_o describe_v its_o unity_n say_v 1_o cor._n 12._o 12._o for_o as_o the_o body_n be_v one_o and_o have_v many_o member_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n whereas_o they_o be_v many_o yet_o be_v one_o body_n so_o also_o christ._n for_o in_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n and_o vers_fw-la 23._o god_n have_v temper_v the_o body_n give_v to_o it_o that_o want_v the_o more_o abundant_a honour_n that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o schism_n in_o the_o body_n but_o the_o member_n together_o may_v be_v careful_a one_o for_o another_o and_o a_o little_a after_o you_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o member_n of_o member_n now_o to_o prevent_v the_o make_v a_o schism_n in_o this_o body_n he_o say_v 1_o cor._n 1_o 10._o i_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n by_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o you_o all_o say_v one_o thing_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o schism_n among_o you_o but_o that_o you_o be_v perfect_a in_o one_o sense_n and_o in_o one_o knowledge_n again_o eph._n 4._o 1_o i_o beseech_v you_o that_o you_o walk_v worthy_a of_o the_o vocation_n in_o which_o you_o be_v call_v and_o a_o little_a after_o careful_a to_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n as_o you_o be_v call_v in_o one_o hope_n of_o your_o vocation_n one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all._n and_o now_o to_o manifest_v what_o care_v our_o saviour_n have_v take_v to_o preserve_v this_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n he_o further_o add_v vers_fw-la 11._o and_o he_o give_v some_o apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n and_o other_o some_o evangelist_n and_o othersome_a pastor_n and_o doctor_n to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o saint_n unto_o the_o work_n of_o ministry_n unto_o the_o edify_v or_o build_v up_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n his_o church_n until_o we_o meet_v all_o into_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n into_o a_o perfect_a man_n into_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o age_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n that_o now_o we_o be_v not_o child_n waver_v and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n in_o the_o wickedness_n of_o man_n in_o craftiness_n to_o the_o circumvention_n of_o error_n but_o do_v the_o truth_n in_o charity_n let_v we_o in_o all_o thing_n grow_v in_o he_o who_o be_v the_o head_n christ_n of_o who_o the_o whole_a body_n to_o wit_n the_o church_n be_v compact_v and_o knit_v together_o by_o all_o juncture_n of_o subministration_n according_a to_o the_o operation_n in_o the_o measure_n of_o every_o member_n make_v the_o increase_n of_o the_o body_n unto_o the_o edify_n of_o itself_o in_o charity_n thus_o the_o apostle_n full_o deliver_v the_o admirable_a structure_n of_o the_o church_n annotation_n now_o as_o rebellion_n be_v the_o bane_n of_o civil_a commonwealth_n and_o kingdom_n and_o peace_n and_o concord_n the_o preservation_n of_o the_o same_o so_o be_v schism_n division_n and_o diversity_n of_o faith_n the_o calamity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o peace_n unity_n and_o uniformity_n the_o special_a blessing_n of_o god_n therein_o and_o in_o the_o church_n above_o all_o commonwealth_n because_o it_o be_v in_o all_o point_v a_o monarchy_n tend_v every_o way_n to_o unity_n there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n one_o christ_n one_o church_n one_o hope_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o head_n one_o body_n as_o the_o apostle_n here_o assure_v we_o thus_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o unite_a body_n of_o the_o church_n now_o to_o manifest_v the_o great_a dignity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o how_o much_o she_o be_v belove_v by_o our_o saviour_n st._n paul_n ephes._n 5_o 22._o say_v the_o man_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o woman_n as_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n himself_o the_o saviour_n of_o his_o body_n to_o wit_n the_o same_o church_n and_o of_o no_o other_o and_o a_o little_a after_o vers_n 25._o husband_n say_v he_o love_v your_o wife_n as_o christ_n also_o love_v the_o church_n and_o deliver_v himself_o for_o it_o that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v it_o cleanse_v it_o by_o the_o laver_n of_o water_n in_o the_o word_n that_o he_o may_v present_v it_o to_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n not_o have_v spot_n or_o wrinkle_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v holy_a and_o unspotted_a and_o again_o a_o little_a after_o vers_n 29._o no_o man_n ever_o hate_v his_o own_o flesh_n but_o he_o nourish_v and_o cherish_v it_o as_o also_o christ_n the_o church_n because_o we_o be_v the_o member_n of_o his_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o bone_n annotation_n the_o apostle_n here_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n of_o his_o body_n to_o wit_n his_o church_n do_v evident_o declare_v that_o none_o can_v be_v save_v or_o have_v any_o benefit_n by_o christ_n that_o be_v not_o of_o his_o body_n the_o church_n and_o what_o church_n that_o be_v st._n augustin_n express_v in_o these_o word_n the_o catholic_n church_n only_a be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o head_n out_o of_o this_o body_n of_o the_o church_n the_o holy_a ghost_n quicken_v no_o man_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o that_o will_v have_v the_o spirit_n let_v he_o beware_v he_o remain_v not_o out_o of_o the_o church_n let_v he_o beware_v he_o enter_v not_o into_o it_o feign_o august_n epist._n 50._o ad_fw-la bonifacium_fw-la comitem_fw-la in_o fine_a it_o be_v a_o unspeakable_a dignity_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n express_v often_o elsewhere_o but_o more_o especial_o in_o this_o whole_a passage_n to_o be_v that_o creature_n for_o which_o christ_n effectual_o suffer_v to_o be_v wash_v and_o imbrue_v with_o water_n and_o blood_n issue_v out_o of_o his_o holy_a side_n to_o be_v nourish_v with_o his_o own_o body_n to_o be_v his_o member_n to_o be_v so_o join_v unto_o he_o as_o the_o body_n and_o member_n of_o the_o same_o flesh_n bone_n and_o substance_n to_o the_o head_n to_o be_v love_v and_o cherish_v of_o he_o as_o a_o wife_n of_o a_o husband_n yea_o to_o be_v his_o wife_n and_o most_o dear_a spouse_n take_v and_o form_v as_o st._n augustin_n often_o say_v out_o of_o his_o own_o side_n upon_o the_o cross_n as_o eve_n our_o first-father_n adam_n spouse_n be_v make_v of_o his_o rib._n august_n in_o psalm_n 126_o &_o 127._o in_o respect_n of_o which_o great_a dignity_n and_o excellency_n the_o same_o holy_a father_n affirm_v the_o church_n to_o be_v the_o principal_a creature_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o name_v in_o the_o creed_n next_o after_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o he_o prove_v against_o the_o macedonian_n the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v god_n because_o
out_o of_o this_o church_n neither_o the_o title_n of_o christian_a secure_v any_o one_o neither_o do_v baptism_n confer_v salvation_n neither_o do_v any_o man_n offer_v a_o sacrifice_n agreeable_a to_o god_n neither_o do_v any_o man_n attain_v to_o eternal_a life_n for_o there_o be_v one_o only_a church_n one_o only_a dove_n one_o only_a wellbeloved_a one_o only_a spouse_n and_o again_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la ad_fw-la petrum_fw-la cap._n 39_o hold_v this_o say_v he_o most_o firm_o and_o doubt_v not_o of_o it_o in_o any_o wise_a that_o every_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_a whatsoever_o baptise_a in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o before_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n he_o be_v not_o reunite_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n let_v he_o bestow_v never_o so_o many_o alm_n yea_o though_o he_o shall_v shed_v his_o blood_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n he_o can_v obtain_v salvation_n likewise_o st._n prosper_n say_v lib._n de_fw-la prom._n &_o praedestinat_n dei_fw-la p._n 4._o cap._n 5._o he_o who_o do_v not_o communicate_v with_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v a_o heretic_n and_o antichrist_n see_v athanasius_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o creed_n whosoever_o expect_v to_o be_v save_v must_v necessary_o before_o all_o thing_n assent_v to_o and_o retain_v the_o catholic_n faith_n which_o unless_o he_o preserve_v entire_a and_o inviolate_a that_o be_v entire_o submit_v to_o it_o without_o all_o question_n he_o will_v perish_v everlasting_o and_o again_o at_o the_o end_n thereof_o thus_o this_o be_v the_o catholic_n faith_n which_o except_o a_o man_n believe_v faithful_o he_o can_v be_v save_v see_v st._n augustin_n write_v upon_o this_o beatitude_n bless_a be_v those_o that_o suffer_v persecution_n for_o justice_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr sermone_fw-la domini_fw-la in_o monte._n it_o be_v not_o the_o suffering_n these_o thing_n say_v he_o that_o make_v man_n bless_v but_o the_o undergo_a they_o for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n not_o only_o with_o a_o equal_a mind_n but_o likewise_o with_o joy_n and_o much_o satisfaction_n for_o many_o heretic_n deceive_v soul_n under_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n have_v suffer_v many_o of_o these_o thing_n but_o they_o be_v therefore_o exclude_v from_o this_o reward_n of_o be_v bless_v because_o it_o be_v not_o here_o only_o say_v bless_a be_v those_o which_o suffer_v persecution_n but_o it_o i●…_n further_o add_v for_o justice_n now_o where_o faith_n be_v not_o sound_a and_o entire_a there_o can_v be_v no_o perfect_a justice_n since_o the_o just_a man_n live_v by_o faith_n neither_o can_v schismatic_n promise_v to_o themselves_o any_o thing_n of_o this_o reward_n because_o likewise_o where_o there_o be_v no_o charity_n there_o can_v be_v no_o justice_n for_o the_o love_n of_o our_o neighbour_n can_v design_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v evil_a or_o unjust_a against_o he_o hence_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o if_o they_o have_v such_o charity_n they_o will_v not_o seek_v to_o rend_v and_o tear_v in_o piece_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v his_o church_n likewise_o the_o same_o father_n in_o his_o fourteen_o sermon_n de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la domini_fw-la prove_v in_o general_a against_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n that_o whatsoever_o in_o particular_a their_o opinion_n be_v yet_o since_o they_o profess_v otherwise_o than_o the_o church_n do_v and_o require_v of_o they_o to_o do_v they_o be_v in_o a_o damnable_a estate_n because_o thereby_o they_o virtual_o renounce_v one_o fundamental_a article_n of_o faith_n viz._n of_o the_o authority_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o therefore_o if_o they_o break_v communion_n though_o but_o for_o one_o doctrine_n and_o that_o of_o itself_o of_o no_o great_a importance_n their_o orthodoxness_n in_o all_o other_o point_n will_v not_o avail_v they_o want_v truth_n and_o especial_o renounce_v charity_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o universal_a church_n hereupon_o the_o same_o father_n in_o psal._n 54._o say_v of_o the_o donatist_n we_o have_v each_o of_o we_o one_o baptism_n in_o this_o they_o be_v with_o i_o we_o celebrate_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o martyr_n in_o this_o they_o be_v with_o i_o we_o frequent_v the_o solemnity_n of_o easter_n in_o this_o they_o be_v with_o i_o but_o they_o be_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n with_o i_o in_o schism_n they_o be_v not_o with_o i_o in_o heresy_n they_o be_v not_o with_o i_o in_o many_o thing_n they_o be_v with_o i_o and_o in_o some_o few_o thing_n they_o be_v not_o with_o i_o but_o in_o those_o few_o thing_n in_o which_o they_o be_v not_o with_o i_o those_o many_o thing_n do_v not_o profit_v they_o in_o which_o they_o be_v with_o i_o so_o again_o the_o same_o father_n speak_v to_o the_o same_o donatist_n epist._n 48._o say_v you_o be_v with_o we_o in_o baptism_n in_o the_o creed_n and_o in_o other_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o unity_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n and_o final_o in_o the_o catholic_n church_n you_o be_v not_o with_o we_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n write_v st._n cyprian_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la one_o church_n say_v he_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o person_n of_o our_o lord_n design_v and_o say_v one_o be_v my_o dove_n this_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n he_o that_o hold_v not_o do_v he_o think_v that_o he_o hold_v the_o faith_n he_o that_o withstand_v and_o resist_v the_o church_n he_o that_o forsake_v peter_n chair_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v do_v he_o trust_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o church_n when_o the_o bless_a apostle_n st._n paul_n also_o show_v this_o sacrament_n of_o unity_n say_v one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n ephes._n 4._o 4._o which_o unity_n we_o bishop_n especial_o that_o rule_n in_o the_o church_n aught_o to_o hold_v fast_o and_o maintain_v that_o we_o may_v prove_v the_o bishoply_n function_n also_o itself_o to_o be_v one_o and_o undivided_a and_o again_o in_o one_o of_o his_o epistle_n epist._n 40._o there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o one_o christ_n and_o one_o church_n and_o one_o chair_n by_o our_o lord_n voice_n found_v upon_o peter_n another_o altar_n to_o be_v set_v up_o or_o a_o new_a priesthood_n to_o be_v make_v beside_o one_o altar_n and_o one_o priesthood_n be_v impossible_a whosoever_o gather_v elsewhere_o scatter_v it_o be_v adulterous_a it_o be_v impious_a it_o be_v sacrilegious_a whatsoever_o be_v institute_v by_o man_n fury_n to_o the_o breach_n of_o god_n divine_a disposition_n get_v you_o far_o from_o the_o contagion_n of_o such_o man_n and_o fly_v from_o their_o speech_n as_o from_o a_o canker_n and_o pestilence_n our_o lord_n have_v premonish_v and_o warn_v we_o beforehand_o say_v they_o be_v blind_a leader_n of_o the_o blind_a matt._n 15._o 14._o st._n hilary_n likewise_o libro_fw-la ad_fw-la constant._n august_n thus_o apply_v this_o same_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n ephes._n 4._o 4_o 5._o against_o the_o arian_n as_o we_o may_v do_v against_o the_o calvinist_n perilous_a and_o miserable_a it_o be_v say_v he_o that_o there_o be_v now_o so_o many_o faith_n as_o will_n and_o so_o many_o doctrine_n as_o manner_n while_o either_o faith_n be_v so_o write_v as_o we_o will_v or_o as_o we_o will_v so_o be_v understand_v and_o whereas_o according_a to_o one_o god_n and_o one_o lord_n and_o one_o baptism_n there_o be_v also_o one_o faith_n we_o fall_v away_o from_o that_o which_o be_v the_o only_a faith_n and_o while_o more_o faith_n be_v make_v they_o begin_v to_o come_v to_o that_o that_o there_o be_v none_o at_o all_o noah_n ark_n be_v a_o acknowledge_a type_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o st._n peter_n 1_o pet._n 3._o 20_o 21._o wherefore_o as_o all_o perish_a temporal_o by_o the_o deluge_n that_o be_v not_o in_o the_o ark_n so_o all_o perish_v eternal_o who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n witness_v st._n cyprian_a who_o word_n be_v these_o cyprian_n lib_n de_fw-fr unitat._n ecclesiae_fw-la whosoever_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o church_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o promise_v of_o christ._n whosoever_o forsake_v the_o church_n be_v a_o alien_n a_o enemy_n a_o profane_a person_n he_o can_v have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n who_o will_v not_o have_v the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n can_v any_o escape_n drown_v be_v out_o of_o the_o ark_n so_o neither_o shall_v any_o one_o escape_n damnation_n out_o of_o the_o church_n they_o can_v abide_v with_o god_n who_o refuse_v to_o continue_v with_o one_o accord_n in_o his_o church_n though_o they_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o fire_n and_o burn_v though_o they_o be_v devour_v by_o wild_a beast_n etc._n etc._n yet_o shall_v not_o that_o be_v any_o crown_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o a_o punishment_n of_o their_o perfidiousness_n such_o a_o one_o may_v be_v kill_v he_o shall_v
be_v commit_v to_o st._n peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o unto_o he_o it_o be_v say_v feed_v my_o sheep_n for_o he_o be_v the_o prayer_n make_v that_o his_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v to_o he_o be_v the_o key_n of_o heaven_n give_v and_o authority_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v to_o he_o the_o cure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o principality_n be_v deliver_v and_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o call_v the_o universal_a apostle_n this_o title_n indeed_o be_v offer_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o st._n peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n but_o none_o of_o that_o see_v do_v ever_o use_v it_o or_o consent_n to_o take_v it_o thus_o st._n gregory_n st._n paul_n ad_fw-la corinth_n 1._o 2._o 15._o say_v the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n annotation_n st._n irenaeus_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 6._o excellent_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n and_o every_o spiritual_a child_n thereof_o judge_n and_o condemn_v all_o false_a prophet_n and_o heretic_n of_o what_o sort_n soever_o at_o length_n conclude_v with_o these_o remarkable_a word_n the_o spiritual_a man_n shall_v judge_v also_o all_o that_o make_v schism_n who_o be_v cruel_a not_o have_v the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o who_o respect_v more_o their_o own_o private_a to_o wit_n interest_n than_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n mangle_v divide_v and_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v kill_v for_o small_a cause_n the_o great_a and_o glorious_a body_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n his_o church_n speak_v peace_n and_o seek_v battle_n he_o to_o wit_n the_o spiritual_a man_n shall_v judge_v likewise_o such_o as_o be_v out_o of_o the_o truth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v out_o of_o the_o church_n which_o church_n shall_v be_v under_o no_o man_n judgement_n for_o to_o the_o church_n be_v all_o thing_n know_v in_o which_o be_v perfect_a faith_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o all_o the_o dispensation_n of_o christ_n and_o firm_a knowledge_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o teach_v all_o truth_n it_o be_v say_v act_v 11._o 26._o that_o the_o disciple_n be_v at_o antioch_n first_o name_v christian_n annotation_n this_o name_n christian_n ought_v to_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o other_o new_a name_n of_o schismatic_n and_o sectary_n must_v be_v abhor_v if_o you_o hear_v say_v st._n hierom_n contr_n lucif_n cap._n 7._o in_o fine_a any_o where_o such_o as_o be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o christ_n not_o to_o have_v their_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o to_o be_v call_v after_o some_o other_o certain_a name_n as_o marcionites_n valentinian_o as_o now_o also_o the_o lutheran_n calvinist_n protestant_n etc._n etc._n know_v you_o that_o they_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o to_o the_o synagogue_n of_o antichrist_n lanctantius_n also_o lib._n 7._o divinarum_fw-la institution_n cap._n 30._o say_v thus_o when_o phrygian_n or_o novatian_o or_o valentinian_o or_o marcionite_n or_o anthropomorphites_n or_o arian_n or_o any_o other_o to_o wit_n such_o sect_n be_v name_v they_o cease_v to_o be_v christian_n who_o have_v leave_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n have_v assume_v the_o name_n of_o men._n neither_o can_v our_o now_o sectary_n help_v or_o excuse_v themselves_o by_o object_v that_o we_o be_v call_v papist_n for_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v by_o they_o scornful_o invent_v as_o the_o name_n homousian_o be_v by_o the_o arian_n this_o name_n be_v not_o of_o any_o one_o man_n bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o elsewhere_o know_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o any_o schism_n or_o sect_n as_o their_o calling_n be_v but_o it_o be_v of_o a_o whole_a state_n and_o order_n of_o governor_n and_o that_o of_o the_o chief_a governor_n to_o who_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o cleave_v in_o religion_n and_o to_o obey_v in_o all_o thing_n concern_v it_o so_o that_o to_o be_v a_o papist_n be_v to_o be_v a_o christian_n a_o child_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o subject_a of_o christ_n vicar_n and_o therefore_o against_o such_o impudent_a sectary_n as_o compare_v the_o faithful_a for_o follow_v the_o pope_n to_o the_o diversity_n of_o heretic_n bear_v the_o name_n of_o new_a master_n let_v we_o ever_o have_v in_o readiness_n this_o say_n of_o st._n hierom_n write_v to_o pope_n damasus_n hierom_n epist._n ad_fw-la damasum_fw-la vitalis_n ay_o know_v not_o miletius_n i_o refuse_v i_o know_v not_o paulinus_n whosoever_o gather_v not_o with_o you_o scatter_v that_o be_v to_o say_v whosoever_o be_v not_o christ_n be_v antichrist_n and_o again_o if_o any_o man_n join_v with_o peter_n chair_n he_o be_v i_o that_o be_v he_o be_v of_o one_o faith_n with_o i_o it_o be_v here_o further_o to_o be_v observe_v that_o this_o name_n christian_n give_v to_o all_o believer_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v especial_o take_v to_o distinguish_v they_o from_o jew_n and_o heathen_n which_o believe_v not_o at_o all_o in_o christ_n and_o the_o same_o now_o likewise_o sever_v and_o make_v christian_n know_v from_o turk_n and_o other_o who_o believe_v nothing_o of_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ._n but_o when_o heretic_n begin_v to_o rise_v up_o among_o christian_n which_o heretic_n profess_v christ_n name_n and_o sundry_a article_n of_o faith_n as_o true_a believer_n do_v then_o the_o name_n of_o christian_a be_v too_o common_a to_o distinguish_v such_o heretic_n and_o make_v they_o know_v from_o true_a believer_n who_o be_v entire_o sound_a in_o their_o faith_n and_o therefore_o to_o distinguish_v these_o from_o such_o true_a and_o faithful_a believer_n of_o all_o doctrine_n of_o christian_a faith_n the_o apostle_n inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n put_v into_o the_o creed_n the_o name_n catholic_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v a_o true_a and_o faithful_a believer_n of_o all_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o by_o this_o it_o appear_v evident_o that_o no_o heretic_n be_v a_o catholic_n although_o they_o false_o pretend_v to_o it_o when_o they_o be_v pr●…ssed_v with_o this_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n to_o confirm_v what_o have_v be_v here_o say_v st._n pacianus_n epist._n ad_fw-la sympherianum_fw-la write_v thus_o when_o heresy_n be_v rise_v and_o endeavour_v by_o divers_a name_n to_o tear_v the_o dove_n of_o god_n and_o queen_n to_o wit_n the_o church_n and_o to_o rend_v she_o in_o piece_n the_o apostolical_a people_n reqire_v their_o surname_n whereby_o the_o uncorrupt_a people_n may_v be_v distinguish_v etc._n etc._n and_o so_o those_o that_o before_o be_v call_v christian_n be_v now_o surname_v catholic_n christian_n be_v my_o name_n say_v he_o catholic_n my_o surname_n and_o thus_o the_o word_n catholic_n be_v a_o proper_a note_n by_o which_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o creed_n teach_v we_o to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n from_o the_o false_a heretical_a congregation_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o heretic_n and_o not_o only_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n which_o signify_v universality_n of_o time_n place_n and_o person_n but_o likewise_o the_o very_a name_n and_o word_n itself_o by_o god_n providence_n have_v be_v always_o and_o only_o appropriate_v to_o true_a believer_n and_o though_o sometime_o at_o the_o beginning_n or_o first_o rise_v up_o of_o sect_n challenge_v by_o they_o yet_o never_o obtain_v by_o heretic_n as_o their_o constant_a name_n wherefore_o st._n augustin_n say_v in_o the_o lap_n of_o the_o church_n the_o very_a name_n of_o catholic_n keep_v i_o aug._n contr_n epist._n fundament_n cap._n 4._o and_o again_o tract_n 32._o in_o joan._n we_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o we_o love_v the_o church_n if_o we_o be_v join_v together_o by_o charity_n if_o we_o rejoice_v in_o the_o catholic_n name_n and_o faith_n and_o again_o tom._n 1._o libr._n de_fw-la verâ_fw-la religione_fw-la cap._n 7._o we_o must_v hold_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v name_v catholic_n not_o only_o of_o her_o own_o but_o also_o of_o all_o her_o enemy_n for_o will_v they_o will_v they_o the_o heretic_n also_o and_o schismatic_n themselves_o when_o they_o speak_v not_o with_o their_o own_o fellow_n but_o with_o stranger_n call_v the_o catholic_n church_n nothing_o else_o but_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o they_o will_v not_o be_v understand_v unless_o they_o discern_v it_o that_o be_v express_v it_o by_o this_o name_n by_o which_o she_o be_v call_v of_o all_o the_o world_n thus_o far_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n concern_v schism_n chap._n iu._n the_o reason_n of_o this_o great_a severity_n of_o both_o scripture_n and_o father_n against_o heresy_n and_o schism_n now_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o great_a severity_n of_o the_o father_n exclude_v all_o from_o any_o hope_n of_o salvation_n that_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n by_o schism_n or_o heresy_n be_v manifest_v by_o st._n augustin_n in_o a_o discourse_n of_o he_o upon_o those_o
very_a gall_n of_o schism_n by_o usurp_v a_o authority_n which_o express_a scripture_n say_v belong_v only_o to_o pastor_n i_o fear_v much_o few_o than_o be_v ordinary_o imagine_v of_o those_o who_o have_v any_o liberal_a education_n will_v be_v excuse_v from_o this_o sin_n by_o any_o ignorance_n surreptition_n provocation_n etc._n etc._n by_o reason_n of_o that_o great_a evidence_n and_o light_n which_o they_o have_v of_o the_o continue_a succession_n unity_n of_o doctrine_n perfect_a obedience_n to_o their_o spiritual_a superior_n pennance_n and_o retirement_n from_o the_o world_n and_o several_a other_o signal_n mark_n of_o the_o one_o holy_a catholic_n and_o apostclick_a church_n some_o may_v be_v more_o deep_o guilty_a and_o obnoxious_a to_o a_o heavy_a damnation_n than_o other_o as_o ringleader_n more_o than_o their_o follower_n but_o damnation_n be_v by_o the_o father_n general_o denounce_v as_o the_o portion_n of_o they_o all_o thus_o of_o the_o sin_n of_o schism_n chap._n vi_o of_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n now_o whereas_o some_o protestant_n seek_v to_o vindicate_v the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o schism_n by_o liken_v it_o to_o the_o church_n of_o st._n cyprian_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o condemn_v no_o man_n nor_o separate_v none_o from_o its_o communion_n yet_o you_o be_v to_o know_v that_o this_o plea_n help_v they_o not_o at_o all_o for_o although_o this_o moderation_n do_v exempt_a st._n cyprian_n from_o schism_n because_o as_o st._n augustin_n say_v the_o church_n have_v not_o then_o decide_v the_o dispute_n to_o who_o decision_n st._n cyprian_n will_v certain_o have_v submit_v yet_o this_o moderation_n do_v not_o at_o all_o exempt_a the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o schism_n because_o her_o separation_n from_o her_o mother-church_n be_v for_o very_a many_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n define_v and_o determine_v by_o the_o same_o church_n this_o follow_a example_n will_v make_v the_o case_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n evident_o appear_v for_o if_o for_o example_n a_o province_n in_o england_n have_v with-drawn_a itself_o from_o the_o public_a civil_a authority_n this_o excuse_n will_v not_o exempt_v they_o from_o be_v rebel_n to_o say_v we_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o quarrel_v with_o those_o that_o continue_v in_o obedience_n to_o the_o king_n we_o mean_v neither_o he_o nor_o they_o any_o harm_n they_o shall_v be_v welcome_a to_o come_v among_o we_o if_o they_o will_v we_o will_v be_v good_a friend_n we_o will_v not_o meddle_v with_o their_o do_n but_o we_o will_v be_v govern_v only_o by_o our_o own_o law_n and_o magistrate_n etc._n etc._n i_o believe_v i_o say_v this_o will_v not_o take_v from_o they_o the_o gild_n of_o rebellion_n their_o civility_n in_o such_o their_o rebellion_n will_v not_o change_v the_o title_n of_o their_o crime_n nor_o free_v they_o from_o the_o punishment_n due_a unto_o it_o it_o may_v perhaps_o qualify_v the_o prince_n resentment_n but_o the_o civil_a treason_n be_v treason_n in_o this_o point_n of_o schism_n to_o the_o end_n that_o doctor_n peirce_n in_o his_o court-sermon_n may_v clear_a protestant_n and_o lay_v the_o weight_n of_o so_o great_a a_o crime_n on_o the_o catholic_n church_n he_o argue_v thus_o since_o beside_o the_o corruption_n in_o practice_n which_o yet_o alone_o can_v justify_v separation_n there_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o many_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n likewise_o entrench_v on_o fundamental_o the_o schism_n can_v not_o be_v on_o the_o church_n of_o england_n side_n which_o be_v oblige_v to_o separate_v so_o just_a cause_n be_v give_v but_o on_o they_o who_o give_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o separation_n this_o plea_n of_o the_o doctor_n if_o it_o be_v admit_v total_o destroy_v all_o government_n and_o lay_v all_o the_o gild_n of_o schism_n and_o rebellion_n in_o church_n and_o state_n upon_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n for_o if_o subject_n may_v accuse_v their_o governor_n and_o be_v themselves_o judge_n of_o the_o justice_n of_o such_o their_o accusation_n the_o governor_n be_v always_o sure_a to_o be_v condemn_v and_o pronounce_v guilty_a and_o the_o subject_a justify_v now_o to_o admit_v this_o liberty_n of_o the_o subject_a in_o church-government_n above_o all_o other_o be_v the_o most_o unjust_a thing_n imaginable_a because_o that_o government_n be_v protect_v from_o all_o error_n in_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v send_v by_o our_o saviour_n to_o teach_v it_o all_o truth_n wherefore_o to_o tax_v that_o government_n with_o error_n in_o faith_n be_v either_o to_o tax_v the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o they_o or_o to_o blaspheme_v against_o our_o saviour_n by_o say_v he_o have_v not_o keep_v his_o word_n in_o send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o teach_v the_o church_n all_o truth_n beside_o there_o be_v this_o other_o consideration_n which_o do_v further_o manifest_v the_o weakness_n of_o this_o the_o doctor_n be_v plea_n for_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v our_o mother-church_n as_o king_n james_n acknowledge_v she_o to_o be_v in_o a_o public_a speech_n make_v to_o his_o parliament_n wherein_o he_o say_v i_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v our_o mother-church_n see_v stow_n pag._n 840._o then_o it_o will_v follow_v as_o it_o be_v urge_v in_o parliament_n by_o doctor_n heath_n archbishop_n of_o york_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n that_o if_o now_o after_o so_o many_o age_n this_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v find_v a_o erroneous_a church_n than_o we_o have_v hitherto_o receive_v no_o benefit_n by_o our_o christianity_n but_o rather_o have_v be_v all_o along_o deceive_v since_o if_o this_o mother-church_n be_v false_a the_o doctrine_n which_o she_o teach_v we_o must_v necessary_o be_v false_a a_o church_n be_v say_v to_o be_v false_a because_o she_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n thus_o the_o doctor_n may_v see_v what_o he_o have_v get_v by_o his_o reformation_n there_o be_v one_o thing_n yet_o that_o deserve_v well_o to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o in_o this_o change_n of_o religion_n here_o in_o england_n for_o if_o all_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o university_n have_v general_o assent_v to_o this_o change_n it_o may_v have_v seem_v a_o lesser_a crime_n but_o to_o have_v this_o do_v as_o the_o facto_fw-la it_o be_v do_v in_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n by_o layman_n only_o and_o this_o only_a with_o the_o difference_n of_o six_o voice_n in_o parliament_n although_o that_o parliament_n be_v pack_v for_o this_o purpose_n and_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o contrary_a protestation_n and_o declaration_n of_o all_o the_o clergy_n and_o university_n this_o do_v heighten_v this_o crime_n to_o the_o utmost_a of_o all_o impiety_n i_o will_v yet_o for_o a_o close_a add_v one_o thing_n more_o which_o do_v not_o a_o little_a manifest_v this_o impiety_n for_o although_o reformation_n of_o religion_n be_v here_o pretend_v yet_o it_o evident_o appear_v by_o our_o english_a history_n that_o nothing_o but_o worldly_a and_o carnal_a interest_n carry_v on_o this_o business_n for_o be_v not_o the_o liberty_n obtain_v by_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o to_o bring_v into_o his_o bed_n a_o new_a handsome_a wife_n instead_o of_o his_o former_a virtuous_a queen_n a_o very_a carnal_a interest_n be_v not_o his_o invade_v all_o the_o possession_n and_o treasure_n of_o monastery_n a_o great_a secular_a interest_n be_v not_o the_o divide_v the_o say_a land_n among_o the_o nobility_n and_o gentry_n at_o very_o easy_a rate_n a_o very_a great_a interest_n in_o king_n edward_n day_n be_v not_o the_o protector_n be_v seize_v on_o the_o remainder_n of_o churchspoyl_n a_o great_a interest_n be_v not_o the_o free_n of_o clergyman_n from_o a_o necessity_n of_o say_v daily_o and_o almost_o hourly_o long_o ecclesiastical_a office_n from_o lie_v alone_o without_o bedfellow_n etc._n etc._n matter_n of_o great_a both_o carnal_a and_o secular_a interest_n be_v not_o the_o exempt_n of_o all_o both_o laity_n and_o ecclesiastic_n from_o the_o duty_n of_o confess_v their_o sin_n and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o penitential_a satisfaction_n from_o rigorous_a fast_n out_o of_o conscience_n and_o religion_n and_o other_o austerity_n a_o matter_n of_o considerable_a interest_n to_o flesh_n and_o corrupt_a nature_n by_o what_o have_v be_v hitherto_o say_v appear_v but_o even_o too_o clear_o how_o that_o the_o fundamental_a rule_n of_o all_o government_n and_o subordination_n be_v utter_o neglect_v in_o england_n at_o the_o time_n that_o the_o pretend_a reformation_n be_v contrive_v and_o execute_v here_o be_v a_o new_a and_o through_o mould_v of_o a_o church_n both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n call_v a_o reformation_n wherein_o all_o the_o synodical_a act_n of_o this_o church_n since_o christianity_n enter_v among_o we_o be_v as_o to_o any_o oblige_a power_n by_o their_o authority_n reverse_v wherein_o all_o the_o decision_n of_o
patriarchal_a council_n yea_o of_o ecumenical_a synod_n be_v call_v into_o examination_n all_o their_o law_n so_o far_o as_o to_o they_o seem_v meet_v reform_v the_o whole_a regard_n that_o england_n have_v to_o all_o other_o catholic_n church_n as_o a_o member_n of_o the_o whole_a be_v utter_o break_v by_o one_o national_a church_n nay_o not_o so_o much_o by_o one_o luxurious_a king_n by_o one_o child_n and_o by_o one_o woman_n even_o when_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o clergy_n protest_v against_o it_o let_v the_o world_n now_o be_v judge_n whether_o this_o action_n can_v be_v justify_v thus_o of_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n chap._n vii_o the_o assertion_n of_o some_o protestant_n concern_v church-authority_n and_o of_o some_o of_o they_o concern_v the_o dignity_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n schism_n and_o heresy_n be_v here_o so_o evident_o demonstrate_v to_o consist_v in_o deny_v obedience_n to_o church-authority_n it_o may_v seem_v strange_a to_o find_v any_o protestant_n so_o much_o to_o their_o own_o condemnation_n to_o write_v any_o thing_n in_o defence_n of_o such_o church-authority_n and_o particular_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o which_o they_o have_v separate_v total_o cast_v off_o all_o obedience_n to_o it_o but_o yet_o this_o they_o have_v do_v as_o will_v appear_v by_o these_o follow_a testimony_n of_o some_o very_a eminent_a among_o they_o see_v sir_n edwin_n sands_n in_o his_o europae_n speculum_fw-la numb_a 12._o where_o he_o have_v this_o follow_a discourse_n of_o the_o security_n in_o submit_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o although_o he_o deliver_v in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o catholic_n yet_o it_o be_v without_o reply_n or_o seek_v to_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o any_o thing_n here_o say_v the_o discourse_n than_o be_v this_o since_o christianity_n be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n a_o doctrine_n whereof_o all_o man_n be_v capable_a as_o be_v in_o gross_a and_o in_o general_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o and_o since_o the_o high_a virtue_n of_o faith_n be_v in_o the_o humility_n of_o the_o understanding_n and_o the_o merit_n thereof_o in_o the_o readiness_n of_o obedience_n to_o embrace_v it_o and_o withal_o since_o of_o outward_a proof_n of_o our_o faith_n where_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v dispute_v the_o church_n testimony_n whether_o for_o declare_v to_o we_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_n be_v a_o proof_n of_o most_o weight_n what_o madness_n be_v it_o for_o any_o man_n to_o tire_v out_o his_o soul_n and_o to_o waste_v away_o his_o spirit_n in_o trace_v out_o all_o the_o thorny_a path_n of_o the_o controversy_n of_o these_o day_n wherein_o to_o err_v be_v no_o less_o easy_a than_o dangerous_a what_o through_o forgery_n of_o author_n abuse_v he_o what_o through_o sophistry_n beguile_v he_o what_o through_o passion_n and_o prejudice_n transport_v he_o and_o not_o rather_o betake_v himself_o to_o the_o right_a path_n of_o truth_n whereunto_o god_n nature_n reason_n and_o experience_n do_v all_o give_v witness_n and_o that_o be_v to_o associate_v himself_o to_o the_o church_n whereunto_o the_o custody_n of_o this_o heavenly_a and_o supernatural_a truth_n have_v be_v from_o heaven_n itself_o commit_v to_o weigh_v discreet_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o be_v once_o find_v to_o receive_v faithful_o and_o obedient_o without_o doubt_n or_o discussion_n whatsoever_o it_o deliver_v now_o to_o discover_v this_o let_v he_o reflect_v that_o beside_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o such_o other_o as_o be_v unite_v with_o it_o he_o find_v all_o other_o church_n to_o have_v have_v their_o end_n or_o decay_n long_v since_o or_o their_o begin_n but_o of_o late_a this_o church_n be_v found_v by_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n with_o a_o promise_n to_o he_o from_o christ_n that_o hell_n gate_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o it_o matt._n 16._o 18._o and_o that_o himself_o will_v be_v assistant_n to_o it_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n it_o have_v now_o continue_v sixteen_o hundred_o year_n with_o a_o honourable_a and_o certain_a line_n of_o near_o two_o hundred_o and_o forty_o pope_n successor_n of_o st._n peter_n both_o tyrant_n traitor_n pagan_n and_o heretic_n in_o vain_a wrest_n rage_a and_o undermine_v it_o all_o the_o lawful_a general_a council_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n have_v from_o time_n to_o time_n approve_v and_o honour_v it_o god_n have_v so_o miraculous_o bless_v it_o from_o above_o that_o many_o learned_a and_o wise_a doctor_n have_v enrich_v it_o with_o their_o write_n army_n of_o saint_n with_o their_o holiness_n and_o virtue_n army_n of_o martyr_n with_o their_o blood_n and_o of_o virgin_n with_o their_o purity_n have_v sanctify_v and_o embellish_v it_o and_o even_o at_o this_o day_n in_o such_o difficulty_n of_o unjust_a rebellion_n and_o unnatural_a revolt_v of_o her_o near_a child_n yet_o she_o stretch_v out_o her_o arm_n to_o the_o utmost_a corner_n of_o the_o world_n new_o embrace_v whole_a nation_n into_o her_o bosom_n last_o in_o all_o other_o opposite_a church_n there_o be_v find_v inward_a dissension_n and_o contrariety_n change_v of_o opinion_n uncertainty_n of_o resolution_n with_o rob_v of_o church_n rebel_a against_o governor_n confusion_n of_o order_n whereas_o contrariwise_o in_o this_o church_n there_o be_v the_o unity_n undivided_a the_o resolution_n unaltered_a the_o most_o heavenly_a order_n reach_v from_o the_o height_n of_o all_o power_n to_o the_o low_a of_o all_o subjection_n all_o with_o admirable_a harmony_n and_o undefective_a correspondence_n bend_v the_o same_o way_n to_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o same_o work_n all_o which_o do_v promise_v no_o other_o than_o a_o continual_a increase_n and_o victory_n wherefore_o let_v no_o man_n doubt_v to_o submit_v himself_o to_o this_o glorious_a spouse_n of_o christ._n this_o then_o be_v accord_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n it_o follow_v that_o she_o be_v reverent_o obey_v in_o all_o thing_n without_o further_a inquisition_n she_o have_v the_o warrant_n that_o he_o that_o hear_v she_o hear_v christ_n and_o whosoever_o hear_v she_o not_o have_v no_o better_a place_n with_o god_n than_o a_o publican_n or_o pagan_a and_o what_o folly_n be_v it_o to_o receive_v scripture_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o her_o authority_n and_o not_o to_o receive_v the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o upon_o her_o authority_n also_o and_o credit_v and_o if_o god_n shall_v not_o always_o protect_v his_o church_n from_o error_n and_o yet_o peremptory_o command_v man_n always_o to_o obey_v she_o than_o have_v he_o make_v very_o slender_a provision_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n which_o conceit_n concern_v god_n who_o care_n of_o we_o even_o in_o all_o thing_n touch_v this_o transitory_a life_n be_v so_o plain_a and_o evident_a will_v render_v we_o very_o ungrateful_o impious_a and_o hard_o be_v the_o case_n and_o mean_v have_v his_o regard_n be_v of_o the_o vulgar_a people_n who_o want_v and_o difficulty_n in_o this_o life_n and_o who_o capacity_n will_v not_o suffice_v to_o sound_v the_o deep_a and_o hide_a mystery_n of_o divinity_n and_o to_o search_v the_o truth_n of_o intricate_a controversy_n if_o there_o be_v not_o other_o who_o authority_n they_o may_v safe_o follow_v and_o rely_v upon_o bless_a be_v they_o who_o believe_v and_o have_v not_o see_v joh._n 20._o 29._o the_o merit_n of_o who_o religious_a humility_n and_o obedience_n exceed_v perhaps_o in_o honour_n and_o acceptation_n before_o god_n the_o subtle_a and_o profound_a knowledge_n of_o many_o other_o thus_o sir_n edwin_n sands_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n dr._n jeremy_n taylor_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o prophesy_v these_o follow_a consideration_n say_v he_o may_v very_o easy_o persuade_v person_n of_o much_o reason_n and_o more_o piety_n to_o maintain_v that_o which_o they_o know_v to_o have_v be_v the_o religion_n of_o their_o forefather_n which_o have_v actual_a possession_n and_o seizure_n of_o man_n mind_n and_o understanding_n before_o the_o opposite_a profession_n have_v a_o name_n as_o first_o its_o doctrine_n have_v have_v a_o long_a continuance_n and_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n which_o therefore_o can_v easy_o be_v suppose_v in_o the_o present_a professor_n to_o be_v a_o design_n since_o they_o have_v receive_v it_o from_o so_o many_o age_n and_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o all_o age_n shall_v have_v the_o same_o purpose_n or_o that_o the_o same_o doctrine_n shall_v serve_v the_o several_a end_n of_o divers_a age_n second_o its_o long_a prescription_n which_o be_v such_o a_o advantage_n that_o it_o can_v with_o many_o argument_n be_v retrench_v as_o rely_v upon_o these_o ground_n to_o wit_n that_o truth_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o falsehood_n and_o that_o god_n will_v not_o